Suitable for college and high school students and those learning on their own,
this fully illustrated coursebook provides comprehensive instruction in the
history and practical techniques of Chinese calligraphy. No previous knowledge
of the language is required to follow the text or complete the lessons.
The work covers three major areas:1) descriptions of Chinese characters and
their components, including stroke types, layout patterns, and indications of
sound and meaning; 2) basic brush techniques; and 3) the social, cultural,
historical, and philosophical underpinnings of Chinese calligraphy—all of which
are crucial to understanding and appreciating this art form.
Students practice brush writing as they progress from tracing to copying to
free-hand writing. Model characters are marked to indicate meaning and stroke
order, and well-known model phrases are shown in various script types, allowing
students to practice different calligraphic styles. Beginners will fi nd the author’s
advice on how to avoid common pitfalls in writing brush strokes invaluable.
CHINESE WRITING AND CALLIGRAPHY will be welcomed by both students
and instructors in need of an accessible text on learning the fundamentals of the
art of writing Chinese characters.
WENDAN LI is associate professor of Chinese language and linguistics at the
University of North Carolina at Chapel Hill.
C H I N E S E L A N G U A G E
Cover illustration: Small Seal Script by Wu Rangzhi, Qing dynasty, and
author’s Chinese writing brushes and brush stand.
Cover design: Wilson Angel
UNIVERSITY of HAWAI‘I PRESS
Honolulu, Hawai‘i 96822-1888
LI
LI-ChnsWriting_cvrMech.indd 1 4/19/10 4:11:27 PM
Chinese Writing and Calligraphy
A Latitude 20 Book
University of Hawai‘i Press
Honolulu
Chinese Writing and Calligraphy
We n d a n L i
© 2009 University of HaWai‘i Press
all rights reserved
14 13 12 11 10 09 6 5 4 3 2 1
Library of Congress Cataloging-in-Publication Data
Li, Wendan.
Chinese writing and calligraphy / Wendan Li.
p. cm.
“a Latitude 20 book.”
includes bibliographical references and index.
isBn-13: 978-0-8248-3364-0 (pbk. : alk. paper)
isBn-10: 0-8248-3364-3 (pbk. : alk. paper)
1. Calligraphy, Chinese. 2. Chinese characters. 3. Calligraphy, Chinese—technique. i. title.
nK3634.a2L4975 2010
745.6’19951—dc22
2009047054
University of Hawai‘i Press books are printed on
acid-free paper and meet the guidelines for permanence
and durability of the Council on Library resources
Designed by Julie Matsuo-Chun
Printed by sheridan Books, inc.
ix P R E F A C E
1 C H A P T E R 1 INTRODUCTION
2 this Book
3 the Chapters
5 Writing and Calligraphy in Chinese society
16 the artistic Qualities of Chinese Writing
18 abilities that Can Be acquired by Practicing Calligraphy
19 to Learners with no Background in the Chinese Language
19 Discussion Questions
20 C H A P T E R 2 WRITING INSTRUMENTS AND TRAINING PROCEDURES
20 the four treasures in a Chinese study
27 the training Process
32 Getting ready to Write
36 Moisture, Pressure, and speed
37 Discussion Questions and Writing Practice
38 C H A P T E R 3 BRUSH TECHNIQUES AND BASIC STROKES I
38 Brush techniques (1): Pressing Down the Brush and Bringing it Up
40 an overview of the Major stroke types
42 stroke type 1: the Dot
45 stroke type 2: the Horizontal Line
46 stroke type 3: the vertical Line
47 tracing
48 Discussion Questions and Writing Practice
50 C H A P T E R 4 BRUSH TECHNIQUES AND BASIC STROKES II
50 Brush techniques (2): Center tip versus side tip
51 Brush techniques (3): revealed tip versus Concealed tip
52 stroke type 4: the Down-Left slant
54 stroke type 5: the Down-right slant
55 stroke type 6: the right-Up tick
56 Chinese Culture (1): Chinese names
60 Discussion Questions and Writing Practice
Contents
c o n t e n t s
vi
61 C H A P T E R 5 BASIC STROKES III AND STROKE ORDER
61 stroke type 7: the turn
62 stroke type 8: the Hook
65 summary of Major stroke types
66 suggestions for Beginners to avoid Common Pitfalls
67 stroke order
71 Discussion Questions and Writing Practice
73 C H A P T E R 6 THE FORMATION OF CHINESE CHARACTERS
73 the nature of Chinese Written signs
75 Categories of Characters
80 the Complexity and Developmental sequence of the Categories
81 Chinese Culture (2): Dates in Chinese according to the Western Calendar
83 Discussion Questions and Writing Practice
84 C H A P T E R 7 THE INTERNAL STRUCTURE OF CHARACTERS AND
THE AESTHETICS OF WRITING
84 the structure of Characters
89 aesthetic Principles
96 Chinese Culture (3): What is Written in Chinese Calligraphy?
98 Discussion Questions and Writing Practice
100 C H A P T E R 8 THE DEVELOPMENT OF CHINESE CALLIGRAPHY I:
THE SEAL SCRIPTS
100 an overview of scripts and styles
102 the Great seal scripts
109 the small seal script
114 Discussion Questions and Writing Practice
115 C H A P T E R 9 THE DEVELOPMENT OF CHINESE CALLIGRAPHY II:
THE CLERICAL SCRIPT
115 the Clerical script
119 Writing the Clerical script
123 Chinese Culture (4): the Chinese traditional Dating Method
128 Discussion Questions and Writing Practice
129 C H A P T E R 1 0 THE DEVELOPMENT OF CHINESE CALLIGRAPHY III:
THE REGULAR SCRIPT
129 the regular script
130 the regular and Clerical scripts Compared
131 Masters of the regular script
138 Discussion Questions and Writing Practice
c o n t e n t s
vii
140 C H A P T E R 1 1 THE DEVELOPMENT OF CHINESE CALLIGRAPHY IV:
THE RUNNING AND CURSIVE STYLES
141 the running style
147 the Cursive style
152 Writing the running and Cursive styles
153 Concluding remarks on the Development of Chinese Calligraphy
154 Discussion Questions and Writing Practice
155 C H A P T E R 1 2 THE ART OF COMPOSITION
157 Components of a Calligraphy Piece
166 Chinese Culture (5): Chinese seals
173 Discussion Questions and Writing Practice
175 C H A P T E R 1 3 THE YIN AND YANG OF CHINESE CALLIGRAPHY
175 Diversity in Harmony
178 Dialectics in the art of Calligraphy
180 appreciation of Calligraphy
183 Chinese Calligraphy and Health
185 Discussion Questions and Writing Practice
185 C H A P T E R 1 4 BY WA5Y OF CONCLUSION:
CHINESE CALLIGRAPHY IN THE MODERN ERA
186 Modern Developments in Chinese Calligraphy
192 Chinese Calligraphy in the West
195 What is Chinese Calligraphy?
197 Discussion Questions and Writing Practice
199 A P P E N D I X 1 : B R U S H W R I T I N G E X E R C I S E S
243 A P P E N D I X 2 : P I N Y I N P R O N U N C I AT I O N G U I D E
247 A P P E N D I X 3 : C H I N E S E D Y N A S T I C T I M E L I N E
251 N O T E S
255 G L O S S A R Y ( E N G L I S H – C H I N E S E – P I N Y I N )
259 R E F E R E N C E S
263 B O O K S I N E N G L I S H F O R F U R T H E R S T U D Y
265 I N D E X
ix
Preface
This book is a collection of teaching materials I accumulated over the past ten
years, during which I taught the course Chinese Culture through Calligraphy at
the University of North Carolina at Chapel Hill. The materials and the order of
topics were tested and revised throughout these years. They reflect special concerns
in teaching Chinese calligraphy to college students in the West who may not have
any background in Chinese culture and the Chinese language. For these students,
the instructor needs to be meticulous not only in demonstrating the details of the
techniques, but also in explaining cultural manifestations, significance, and differ-
ences. The goal is to make the traditional Chinese art reverberate on the harp of the
American brain, which has been tuned to the scales of Western culture.
I had rich resources to draw from when writing this book. The long history of
Chinese culture, language, and calligraphy and the numerous scholars who studied
and wrote about Chinese calligraphy or simply practiced the art were a joy to read
about and to reflect on. I learned a great deal from the works of many other scholars
who are pioneers in introducing Chinese culture to Western readers and who wrote
extensively about Chinese art and calligraphy in English. Notable among them are
Yee Chiang, Yuho Tseng, and Da-Wei Kwo. I am deeply grateful to the late Tsung
p re f a c e
x
Chin, professor at the University of Maryland. It was through working with him
on a collection of papers following the First International Conference on East Asian
Calligraphy Education in 1998 and also through our personal conversations that my
idea of offering a Chinese calligraphy course started to take shape.
I wish to express my gratitude to the Grier/Woods Presbyterian China Initiative
and to the Freeman Foundation for fellowships and travel awards I received through
the University of North Carolina at Chapel Hill that allowed me to work on this
project, to the Boardman Family Foundation for their support in my teaching and
research, and to the Department of Asian Studies of the University of North Caro-
lina at Chapel Hill for its support in furnishing optimal teaching facilities for the
Chinese calligraphy course I teach. I have also benefited from presenting parts of the
materials in this book and discussions of course design at conferences, including the
International Conferences of East Asian Calligraphy Education (2004 in Columbia,
South Carolina, and 2006 in Hiroshima, Japan) and annual conferences of the Chi-
nese Language Teachers Association.
I owe a special debt of gratitude to Dwight St. John, Kay Robin Alexander,
Carl Robertson, and two anonymous reviewers for their careful reading of earlier
drafts of the manuscript and their invaluable advice and suggestions for revision.
My sincere thanks also go to Susan Stone for excellent copy editing and to Keith
Leber of the University of Hawai‘i Press for his assistance throughout the publica-
tion process.
I would like to thank calligraphers Xu Bing, Harrison Xinshi Tu, Ren Ping,
Mao Rong, and Wang Chunjie for permission to use their artwork in this book.
Thanks also go to the National Palace Museum, Taiwan, for their permission to use
images from their collection as illustrations. Sources of other illustrations, for which
I am also grateful, are mentioned in the captions of specific figures.
To the students at the University of North Carolina at Chapel Hill who took
the Chinese calligraphy course with me over the past years, I say thank you. Your
learning experience and feedback on the course played an important role in shaping
this book.
1
c h a p t e r o n e
introduction
Chinese calligraphy, 書法 shū fǎ in Chinese, has been considered the quintessence
of Chinese culture because it is an art that encompasses Chinese language, history,
philosophy, and aesthetics. The term’s literal translation, “the way of writing” (shū,
“writing,” and fǎ, “way” or “standard”), identifies the core of the art, which has
close bonds with Chinese written signs, on the one hand, and painting, on the
other. In China, adeptness in brush calligraphy is among the four traditional skills
that cultivate the minds of the literati, along with the ability to play qín (a stringed
musical instrument), skill at qí (a strategic board game known as “go” in the West),
and ability to produce huà (paintings). In the modern age, shū fǎ is known world-
wide as a unique type of art, representing one of the most distinctive features of
Chinese civilization.
To people in the West, Chinese calligraphy symbolizes a complex, distinct, re-
mote, and mysterious cultural heritage. These perceptions stem in part from differ-
ences between Eastern and Western worldviews, but the written signs themselves also
present a seemingly insurmountable barrier. However, Chinese calligraphy is also fas-
cinating and attractive in Western eyes. Recent advances in communication between
China and the rest of the globe have piqued interest in China’s culture, language,
c h i n e s e w r i t i n g a n d c a l l i g r a p hy
2
worldview, and way of life. Both within China and elsewhere, knowledge of Chinese
calligraphy is seen a mark of education, creativity, and cultural sophistication.
tHis BooK
This book introduces Chinese calligraphy and its techniques to anyone with an in-
terest in Chinese brush writing. It does not presuppose any previous knowledge of
the Chinese language or writing system. The chapters are designed with the follow-
ing objectives: (1) to describe in detail the techniques of Chinese brush writing at
the beginning level, (2) to provide high-quality models with practical and interesting
characters for writing practice, and (3) to introduce linguistic, cultural, historical,
and philosophical aspects of Chinese calligraphy. In the discussion comparisons are
made with Western culture and characteristics of the English language and callig-
raphy. The book consists of fourteen chapters of text supplemented in an appendix
with models for brush-writing practice.
Detailed instruction in brush-writing techniques form the heart of the book. A
standard training procedure is outlined first, followed by a detailed examination of
three fundamental elements of Chinese calligraphy: stroke techniques, the structure
of Chinese characters, and the art of composition. Training in brush writing be-
gins with brush strokes in the Regular Script. According to the traditional Chinese
training method, domestic calligraphy students always spend a substantial amount of
time mastering the Regular Script before moving on to other styles. Learners in the
West, however, generally prefer to have the opportunity to learn about and practice
writing various scripts. Therefore, this book focuses on basic brush writing skills in
the Regular Script in the first half and then introduces Small Seal Script, Clerical
Script, and Running/Cursive styles in the second half.
Learners are exposed to a diversity of script styles. They are not expected to
master them by the end of this book, although some students, with repeated prac-
tice, may be able to write some characters in a particular script quite well. Some
learners or instructors may prefer not to practice all the scripts introduced in this
book. Instructors or individual learners can decide the number of additional script
types to be included in the course of study, whether hands-on writing practice is
done for all of them, and the amount of time to be devoted to each script. Serious
students will no doubt need further training and practice in order to gain compe-
tence in artistic and creative production. For this purpose, the reading list at the end
of this book provides some resources for further study in English.
The book also describes in detail the formation of Chinese characters, their
stroke types, stroke order, components, and major layout patterns. Many of the
explanations given here are not found in other calligraphy books. The book title
Chinese Writing and Calligraphy well reflects this special feature. The history of the
Chinese calligraphic art is presented through a review of early Chinese writing, the
i n t ro d u c t i o n
3
development of different writing styles, the ways in which calligraphy is adapting to
the modern age, and the ongoing debate on the future of the time-honored tradi-
tional art. Cultural aspects discussed in the book include writing instruments (their
history, manufacture, and features), Chinese names and seals, the Chinese world-
view (for example, the cyclic view of time), and the Daoist concept of yin and yang
as a fundamental philosophical principle in Chinese calligraphy.
Model sheets for brush-writing practice are designed to accompany the discus-
sion in the chapters and to provide opportunities for hands-on writing practice.
Learners are guided from tracing to copying and then to freehand writing. Single
strokes are practiced before characters, which are followed by the composition of
calligraphy pieces. Writing skills are developed in the Regular Script first. Then op-
portunities are provided for learners to write characters in Small Seal, Clerical, and
Cursive styles so that they can explore and identify their personal preferences. The
selection and arrangement of model characters reflect a number of considerations.
Preference is given to characters that serve practical teaching and learning goals or
characters that frequently appear in calligraphy pieces. Repetition of characters,
either in the same or different scripts, also serves specific pedagogical functions.
Since no two calligraphy courses are the same, instructors or individual learners may
decide to repeat or to skip certain pages depending on their specific goals.
On the model sheets for brush-writing practice, each character is marked with
its meaning in English and the stroke order in Regular Script. The model characters
are also sequenced by level of difficulty. After individual characters, well-known
phrases are also practiced. The brush-writing models in the four script types are
all based on works of Wang Xizhi (303–361 CE), the calligraphy sage of the Jin
dynasty whose writing represents the peak of the art. As is traditional and to avoid
confusion, Chinese personal names throughout the book are presented with the
family name first, followed by the given name; the Chinese characters presented in
this book are in their full (traditional) form. The romanization of Chinese terms is
in Pinyin.
As will be discussed in Chapter 2, Chinese calligraphy is written on absorbent
paper. Following that tradition, the learner is advised to use absorbent paper, ideally
“rice paper,” for writing practice. Nowadays, such paper (even with a printed grid
specifically for Chinese calligraphy practice) can be purchased online or in art stores.
Rice paper, which is quite transparent, can be laid on top of the model characters
provided in this book for tracing.
tHe CHaPters
Chapter 2 first describes the instruments used in Chinese brush writing, including
their history, manufacture, features, and maintenance. Elementary training issues
are dealt with next, including steps of the training procedure, the management of
c h i n e s e w r i t i n g a n d c a l l i g r a p hy
4
pressure, and the roles of moisture and speed in writing. Other rudimentary issues
such as brush preparation and arrangement of writing space are also discussed.
Chapters 3, 4, and 5 expound upon the basic skills in writing individual strokes.
First the techniques of pressing down and lifting up of the brush are discussed and
illustrated, followed by an overview of the eight major stroke types. Step-by-step in-
structions on how to write each stroke type are then laid out and amply illustrated.
The discussion also includes variant forms of each stroke type, techniques involved
in writing, stroke-order rules, and common mistakes made by beginning learners.
Models for writing practice are provided. To prepare learners for producing calli-
graphic pieces and one’s signature, cultural topics related to calligraphy are also dis-
cussed. Chapter 4, for example, offers a discussion of Chinese names, including how
a Chinese name is chosen for a person based on his or her original Western name.
The next chapters proceed to the actual formation of Chinese characters. Chapter
6 describes the nature of Chinese written signs and categorizes characters in terms
of their composition. Chapter 7 delineates the internal layout patterns of characters
and some basic principles of writing. The cultural topics for these two chapters are
dating in Chinese according to the Western calendar and the themes and content
of calligraphy pieces.
Historical factors that molded Chinese calligraphy are presented in Chapters 8
through 11. Since this evolution started more than three thousand years ago, the
discussion only summarizes the major line of development, emphasizing the events
and calligraphy masters with a profound influence on the art. Each of these chapters
deals with one script type (Seal Script, Clerical, Regular, and Running/Cursive).
Together these chapters seek to foster an understanding of the historical develop-
ment of the calligraphic art, to build a knowledge base for distinguishing and appre-
ciating the various script styles, and to provide opportunities to practice the major
scripts. Discussion concentrates on how each script was developed, how it differs
from other styles, its main characteristics, and life stories of major calligraphers. Il-
lustrations and model sheets are also provided. For the Regular Script, the personal
styles of the three greatest masters, Wang Xizhi, Yan Zhenqing, and Liu Gongquan,
are compared in Chapter 10, so that learners have a chance to examine subtle dif-
ferences within one major script type. For a cultural topic, Chapter 9 describes
the Chinese traditional time-recording method commonly used to date calligraphy
works.
Composing a calligraphy piece is the topic of Chapter 12. Details of components
and layout patterns are described, followed by a discussion of the making and use
of the Chinese seal. Chapter 13 explores the Daoist concept of yin and yang, and its
significance in Chinese culture. This chapter also discusses how to appreciate a callig-
raphy piece and the relation of calligraphy and health: it will be shown that calligra-
phy practice is a healthy union of motion and tranquillity. The motion of calligraphy
writing not only corresponds to rhythms of the physical body, such as breathing and
i n t ro d u c t i o n
5
heartbeat, but also accords with the writer’s moods and emotions. Chapter 14, the last
chapter, examines how calligraphy, as a traditional art form, is adapting to the age of
modernization and globalization.
WritinG anD CaLLiGraPHy in CHinese soCiety
All languages serve the practical function of communication. In different cultures
and societies, however, language and its roles are perceived differently.
According to Jewish and Christian cultures, God created language (human
speech). In Chinese culture, however, the origin of speech is never accounted for;
instead, the historical emphasis has always been on writing. To the Chinese, the
creation of language means the creation of Chinese characters. Credit for this inven-
tion is given to a half-god, half-human figure called Cang Jie, who lived about four
thousand years ago. The ancient Chinese believed that Heaven had secret codes,
which were revealed through natural phenomena. Only those with divine powers
were endowed with the ability to break them. Cang Jie, who had four eyes (Fig-
ure 1.1), had this ability. He was able to interpret natural signs and to transcribe
the shapes of natural objects (e.g., mountains, rivers, shadows of trees and plants,
animal footprints, and bird scratches) into writing. Legend has it that when Cang
Jie created written symbols, spirits howled in agony as the secrets of Heaven were
revealed. Since then all Chinese, from emperors to ordinary farmers, have shared a
tremendous awe for written symbols. They have venerated Cang Jie as the origina-
tor of Chinese written language. Today shrines to Cang Jie can be found in various
locations in China. The one in Shanxi Province, not far from the tomb of the Yel-
low Emperor, the legendary ancestor of the Chinese people (ca. 2600 BCE), is at
least 1,800 years old. Memorial ceremonies are held every year at both shrines.
Figure 1.1. Cang Jie, creator of Chinese characters (legendary). [ from zhou, hanzi jiaoxue lilun fangfa , p. 5, where
no indication of source is given ]
c h i n e s e w r i t i n g a n d c a l l i g r a p hy
6
One reason for the great respect for the written word in China has to do with
the longevity of Cang Jie’s invention: the written signs he created have been in
continuous use throughout China’s history. This written language unites a people
on a vast land who speak different, mutually unintelligible dialects. It is also the
character set in which all of the classics of Chinese literature were written. Using
these characters, the Chinese were the first to invent movable type around 1041 CE.
It is estimated that, until the invention of movable type in the West, no civilization
produced more written material than China. By the end of the fifteenth century
CE, more books were written and reproduced in China than in all other countries
of the world combined!
The central, indispensable role of the written language in China nurtured a
reverence for written symbols that no other culture has yet surpassed. Written char-
acters hold a sacred position, being much more than a useful tool for communica-
tion. As we will see throughout this book, characters have been incised into shells
of turtles and shoulder blades of oxen; they have been inscribed on pottery, bronze,
iron, stone, and jade; they have been written on strips of bamboo, pieces of silk,
and sheets of the world’s first paper. They are on ancestral worship tablets and for-
tuneteller’s cards; they appear at building entrances and on doors for good luck.
When new houses are built, inscriptions are put on crossbeams to repel evil spirits.
Significant indoor areas or the central room in a traditional residence always have
brush-written characters visible at a commanding height. Decorating such halls
and rooms with calligraphy is a ubiquitous tradition in China, which should not be
compared to the Western tradition of hanging framed biblical admonitions, printed
in Gothic letters, on the wall of an alcove. The importance of the latter resides much
more in its message, whereas that of the former is predominantly its visual beauty.
(See Figures 1.2–1.4).
Written characters are also an integral part of public scenes in China. Simply by
walking down the street, one can enjoy a feast of numerous calligraphic styles on
street signs, shop banners, billboards, and in restaurants and parks. During festivities
and important events, brush-written couplets are composed and put up for public
display. There are marriage couplets for newlyweds, good-luck couplets for new
babies, longevity couplets on elders’ birthdays, spring couplets for the New Year,
and elegiac couplets for memorial services. Calligraphy works written in various
styles can be purchased on the street or in shops and museums; these may feature
characters, such as 福 fú, “blessings,” and 壽 shòu, “longevity,” written in more than
one hundred ways. (See Figures 1.5–1.8).
The decorative function of Chinese calligraphy is a common sight in China.
At tourist attractions, writings of past emperors and calligraphy masters or famous
sayings and poems written by famous calligraphers are engraved on rocks or wood
to enhance the beauty of nature. They can even be found on sides of mountains,
where huge characters are carved into stone cliffs for all to view and appreciate
Figure 1.4. Living room in a modern urban residence with a piece of calligraphy
carved on wood hanging on the wall. [ photo by wendan li ]
Figure 1.2. entrance of the yuelu academy 岳麓書
院 in Changsha (established 1015 ce), one of the four
great academies of northern song China. the hori-
zontal inscription bearing the name “yuelu academy”
was bestowed by emperor Zhenzong. the couplet,
which reads vertically from right to left, says: “Promis-
ing scholars gather on the land of Chu; the majority of
them are here.” [ photo by wendan li ]
Figure 1.3. Central room of a traditional Chinese
house, where everything of spiritual value to the
owner is displayed and worshiped, from Buddha
to national leaders to photos of deceased family
members. Brush-written couplets are indispens-
able to such a display. Photo taken in rural
Guangxi. [ photo by wendan li ]
Figure 1.6. restaurant sign Brocaded red Mansion 錦繡紅樓 in small
seal script. [ photo by wendan li ]
Figure 1.5. Wallpaper in a restaurant with 福 (blessings) in various styles.
[ photo by wendan li ]
Figure 1.7. Welcome sign 賓至如歸 (guests coming home) in small seal script at the entrance of a modern
hotel. [ photo by wendan li ]
Figure 1.8. a wall decorated with characters at Beijing international airport. the large charac-
ter 和 in the middle means “harmony.” [ photo by wendan li ]
c h i n e s e w r i t i n g a n d c a l l i g r a p hy
10
(Figures 1.9–1.12). The Forest of Monuments in the historic city of Xi’an and the
inscriptions along the rocky paths of Mount Tai are the largest displays of Chinese
calligraphy. Places well-known calligraphers visited and left such writing are historic
landmarks protected by the government today.
The importance of writing in Chinese society and, more specifically, the im-
portance of good handwriting are apparent to students of Chinese history. Before
the hard pen and pencil were introduced to China from the West in the early twen-
tieth century, the brush was the only writing tool. Brush writing was a skill every
educated man had to master. In the seventh century CE, the imperial civil ser-
vice examinations were introduced in China to determine who among the general
population would be permitted to enter the government’s bureaucracy. Calligraphy
was not only a subject that was tested, but also a means by which knowledge in
other subject areas (including Confucian classics and composition) was exhibited.
In theory at least, anyone, even a poor farmer’s son, could attain a powerful govern-
ment post through mastery of the subjects on the exams. This new system standard-
ized the curriculum throughout China and offered the only path for people with
Figure 1.9. Daguan (Grand view) Peak inscribed wall at Mount tai (1). Calligraphy written by emperors and
famous calligraphers was carved into cliffs to praise the natural beauty and the scenery. the two large red
characters on top left (meaning “peaks in clouds”) were the calligraphy of the Kangxi emperor (1654–1722) of
the Qing dynasty. the text below was written by the Qianlong emperor (1711–1799), also of the Qing dynasty.
[ photo by wendan li ]
i n t ro d u c t i o n
11
talent and ability to move up in society. Accordingly, success in the civil service
examinations became the life dream of generations of young men, and calligraphy
was virtually a stepping stone. From a very early age, students would start practic-
ing calligraphy and studying the Confucian classics. For thirteen centuries, the civil
service examinations were central to China’s political and cultural life. They created
Figure 1.10. Daguan (Grand view) Peak inscribed wall at Mount tai (2). this
lengthy prose text commemorating his visit to the scenic spot was written
by Li Longji (685–762), a tang dynasty emperor known for his calligraphy.
Carved into the cliff in 726, it stands 43.6 feet high and 17.4 feet wide and
consists of 1,008 characters. each character is 6.5 x 10 inches in size, writ-
ten in the Clerical script. the other carvings were added later during various
dynasties. [ photo by wendan li ]
Figure 1.11. the Chinese character 壽 (longevity) in various styles engraved on mountain cliffs near Qingdao,
shandong Province. [ photo by wendan li ]
Figure 1.12. Calligraphy and poem by Guo Moruo, a well-known modern Chinese scholar,
displayed outside the Guo Moruo Museum in Beijing. [ photo by wendan li ]
i n t ro d u c t i o n
13
a powerful intelligentsia whose skills in composition and calligraphy were highly
valued. Consequently, in traditional China, excellence in learning, superb hand-
writing, and an official post were a common combination.1
This tradition is carried on in modern China. Today, during important events or
official inspection tours, government officials often write or are asked to write words
of encouragement and commemoration in calligraphy to be presented to the public.
A person’s learning is judged, at least in part, by his or her handwriting. A scholar’s
essay, however wise, is considered poor if the handwriting is inferior. Although the
civil service examinations were abolished at the beginning of the twentieth century,
China remains a society where good handwriting is uniquely valued.
China’s rulers have played a role in promoting calligraphy. Numerous past emper-
ors were masters of calligraphy and left their works for later generations to appreciate.
Figures 1.2, 1.9, and 1.10 illustrate the calligraphy of Chinese emperors. Figure 1.13
below shows the calligraphy of Emperor Huizong (1082–1135) of the Song dynasty,
who created his own style called “Slender Gold,” which is still among the most popu-
lar and well-known calligraphic styles. Figure 1.14 was also written by a well-known
ruler-calligrapher, Emperor Qianlong (1711–1799) of the Qing dynasty.
Writing takes place every minute of the day in every corner of the world, but in
China it is elevated to a fine art that pervades all levels of society. The art of calligra-
phy is held in the highest esteem, surpassing painting, sculpture, ceramics, and even
poetry. Yet, Chinese calligraphy is more than an art. It is a national taste, nourished
in everyone from childhood on, that has penetrated every aspect of Chinese life.
In China it is believed that a person’s handwriting reveals education, self-discipline,
Figure 1.13. slender Gold by emperor Huizong of the song dynasty. Collection of the national Palace Museum
(taipei). [ from masterpieces of chinese calligraphy, p. 8. reproduced by permission from the national palace museum ]
c h i n e s e w r i t i n g a n d c a l l i g r a p hy
14
and personality; it measures cultural attainment and aesthetic sensitivities; and it
even relates to physical appearance. Thus the instinct to judge or comment on a
person’s handwriting is as common as the instinct to judge people’s appearance and
personality. In a way, handwriting is like a person’s face: everyone tries to keep it
at its best. For the same reason, good handwriting brings satisfaction, confidence,
self-esteem, and respect.
In modern China, calligraphy is not only a regular part of the school curricu-
lum (Figure 1.15); it is practiced by people of all ages and from all walks of life.
Although the practical function of brush writing is diminishing in modern society,
calligraphy remains a widely practiced amateur art for millions of Chinese—an
enjoyable pastime outside of work and daily chores. Along with calligraphy clubs,
associations, magazines, and local and national competitions at all levels, prominent
newspapers also publish columns on Chinese calligraphy.
Visitors to China today often notice a unique cultural phenomenon: In every
town and city, in the early morning when a new day is just starting, people, old
and young, male and female, gather in parks or even on sidewalks to do morning
exercises. Many bring a special brush tied to a stick and a bucket of water; then they
Figure 1.14. signboard for Bishu
shanzhuang imperial Palace. Calligraphy
by the Qianlong emperor of the Qing
dynasty. [ photo by wendan li ]
Figure 1.15. Calligraphy class in an elementary school in Beijing. [ photo by wendan li ]
i n t ro d u c t i o n
15
Figure 1.16. Ground calligraphy, 7:30 a.m. in Beijing. the writing on the right reads: “an elegant room does not
have to be big.” [ photo by wendan li ]
find a quiet spot and start wielding their brushes on the pavement. A new name,
“ground calligraphy” or “water calligraphy,” has been given to this new way of both
practicing calligraphy and doing morning exercises (Figure 1.16). As will be dis-
cussed in Chapter 13, medical research has indicated that regular, sustained practice
of calligraphy may improve body functions and is thus a good way to keep fit.
Chinese brush writing once served as the primary means of written commu-
c h i n e s e w r i t i n g a n d c a l l i g r a p hy
16
nication. During thousands of years of practice, it developed into a fine art. In
modern Chinese society, because of its combination of artistic characteristics, cul-
tural underpinnings, and health benefits, calligraphy continues to flourish and break
new ground. Love for the written word is not only present among the literati and
promoted by the government, but also deeply rooted in the populace. The art of
calligraphy has also spread to nearby countries such as Japan and Korea, where it is
practiced and studied with great enthusiasm.
Why is writing so important to the Chinese? What makes it special and different
from the writing of other languages? To answer these questions, let’s look more close-
ly at the nature of Chinese writing and then compare it with Western calligraphy.
tHe artistiC QUaLities of CHinese WritinG
Chinese is one of the few languages in which the script not only is a means of com-
munication but also is celebrated as an independent form of visual art. The best of
Western calligraphy, for example, the scriptures written on parchment by monks
in the Middle Ages and the letters written in golden ink by scribes at Buckingham
Palace, exemplify its primary function as a means of documentation and communi-
cation. One might ask why Western calligraphy didn’t evolve from the functional to
the purely artistic, as Chinese calligraphy did. The answer has a lot to do with the
nature of the scripts (see Figure 1.17).
word 字
w-o-r-d 宀 + 子
Figure 1.17. “Word” versus 字 (Chinese character).
Alphabetic writing consists of an inventory of letters that correspond to speech
sounds. Sound symbols are simple in structure and small in number, ranging from
about twenty to fifty for a particular language. The English alphabet, for example,
has twenty-six letters. Each is formed by arranging one to four elements. The letter
“o” has only one element; “i” has two, a dot and a vertical line; and the capital letter
“E” has four elements. These elements are generally various lines, curves or circles,
and dots. In writing, letters are arranged in a linear order to form words and texts.
Because of the small number of letters, their frequency of use is high. Furthermore,
the same letter repeated in a text is always supposed to be written in exactly the
same way, except for larger or more ornate capital letters at the beginning of texts.
Consequently, Western calligraphy concentrates on repetitive lines and circles.
Chinese is entirely different. Its written signs, or characters, are meaning
i n t ro d u c t i o n
17
symbols, each functioning roughly as a single word does in English. Characters are
also formed by assembling dots and lines, but there are more such elements with
more varied shapes. Each element, a dot or a line, as a building block of Chinese
characters, is called a stroke. In writing, strokes of various shapes are assembled in a
two-dimensional space, first into components and then by combining components
into characters. In the example in Figure 1.17, the character 字 zì has two com-
ponents, 宀 and 子, arranged in a top-down fashion. The component 宀 consists
of three strokes, as does the other component 子. Generally speaking, the number
of characters required for daily functions such as newspaper reading is three to four
thousand. As meaning symbols, the characters have to be distinct enough for visual
decoding. Therefore, they cannot all be simple in structure. Some are relatively sim-
ple with a small number of strokes, while others can be quite complex with more
than twenty or even thirty strokes. Each character has a unique internal structure.
The components making up these characters, for example, can be arranged in a top
to bottom, left to right, or even a more complex configuration.
In calligraphy, the soft and resilient writing brush is used to vary the shape and
thickness of each stroke. This tool, combined with ink on absorbent paper, makes
each character distinct. When characters are put together to form a text, additional
techniques create coordination and interplay not only between adjacent characters,
but also among characters that appear in different parts of a text. Instead of striving
to produce a uniform look, Chinese calligraphers make every effort to keep charac-
ters recurring in a text different from one another.
Generally speaking, Western calligraphy reflects an interest in ornamenting words
on the page. It stresses perfection and rigidity; mastering exact duplication of letters is
considered the pinnacle of the art. More modern works do overcome the traditional
boundaries and allow for personal expression, but this is most often seen in high art
and is hard to find from the average calligrapher. Thus calligraphy in the West is gen-
erally considered a minor art that tends to curb spontaneity. Chinese calligraphy, by
sharp contrast, is an art form in which variation is the key. The freedom of personal
expression or personal emotion that emanates through the work is its goal.
The ability to reach this goal depends on the nature of Chinese writing, the writ-
ing instruments, and the skill of the calligrapher. Together, these elements provide
enormous opportunities for artistic expression. While creativity is the life of any art,
the complex internal structure of Chinese characters and the unique writing instru-
ments have allowed ample space in multiple dimensions for Chinese calligraphy to
develop into a fine art whose core is deeply personal, heartfelt expression.
Another important aspect of Chinese calligraphy is the astounding variety of
uses it serves. Western calligraphy is typically reserved for formal use such as in wed-
ding invitations, certificates and awards, and other special documents. Its historical
linkage with organized religion also places it outside the realm of ordinary human
activity. In addition, its preindustrial origins and prevalence throughout medieval
c h i n e s e w r i t i n g a n d c a l l i g r a p hy
18
and early modern Europe visually relegate it to the past. All of this is in stark
contrast to China’s continuous fascination with calligraphy, which is still a part of
everyday life.
aBiLities tHat Can Be aCQUireD By PraCtiCinG
CHinese CaLLiGraPHy
“What can I learn by practicing Chinese calligraphy?” you may ask. First, practicing
calligraphy cultivates sensibility and nourishes one’s inborn nature. We know that
our brains have two hemispheres, or parts. The left brain is verbal, analytical, logical,
and linear, whereas the right brain is nonverbal, synthetic, spatial, artistic, and ho-
listic. A balanced use of both hemispheres allows one to reach full potential, grants
strength in problem solving, and encourages a healthy perspective on life. Tradition-
ally, Western culture has been associated with left-brain habits and therefore places a
stronger emphasis on reasoning and verbal abilities. Modern education also focuses
more on analytical abilities, logical thinking, and verbal skills. Chinese calligraphy,
which is both language and art, requires a balanced use of both sides of the brain.
Using the right brain for visual imaging, spatial perception, and holistic thinking
also provides a good opportunity to develop creativity.
In your study of Chinese calligraphy, you will learn to use your eyes to observe
the details of writing as an art form, to discover the crucial features of a stroke, a
character, and a piece of writing as a whole. You will learn to coordinate your mind
with your hand and to maneuver the brush to produce different shapes and lines
with the quality you want. In addition, you will also be trained in image memory,
artistic thinking, and creativity, as well as visual expression, endurance, discipline,
and hard work.
The purpose of education is to develop human potential. In today’s world, glo-
balization plays an increasing role in how we experience life. It has become essential
to learn about other cultures and alternative ways of thinking, and to be trained to
bring together all our mental and physical faculties, in order to meet today’s chal-
lenges.
The principles of calligraphy contained in this book reflect Chinese philosophy,
which can be widely applied to life anywhere in the world. Understanding the way
of the brush increases appreciation of Eastern principles such as space dynamics,
black and white contrast, and emphasis on consensus and models. Practicing callig-
raphy is also a good way to study Chinese history and language. Any degree of skill
in the art is a sign of cultural exposure. For those of strongly artistic bent, Chinese
calligraphy helps develop aesthetic vision through the basic elements of line, pro-
portion, and space dynamics. It teaches you a way to appreciate and participate in a
visual view of the world.
i n t ro d u c t i o n
19
to Learners WitH no BaCKGroUnD
in tHe CHinese LanGUaGe
The spirit of a foreign culture is often difficult to understand. It does not lend itself
to easy expression. To many people in the West, Chinese culture is baffling and
elusive. And the Chinese have such a complicated writing system that each charac-
ter seems to be a mystery, a maze of lines. In this book, however, you will see that
Chinese characters are well organized and based on inner logic. You will learn ways
to look at them and understand their internal organization and aesthetics.
One does not have to learn the Chinese language in order to enjoy or even to
write Chinese calligraphy. Calligraphy is a visual art, a unity of drawing and writ-
ing that appeals more to the eye than to the ear. While it is true that speakers of
the language can appreciate the textual content, it is perfectly possible to enjoy and
practice calligraphy as an abstract art without knowing the language. Calligraphy
is much like music in that it can be enjoyed by different people in different ways.
Some play musical instruments; some compose and analyze music; others simply
enjoy listening to it. In China, many native speakers of Chinese today do not know
how to write with a brush or to read cursive writing. But they may still enjoy cal-
ligraphy and the Cursive Style.
If you cannot read Chinese, do not be intimidated by the language barrier. Do
not let the lack of verbal literacy hold you back. Learn to see the characters rather
than read them. In this book, you will be introduced to brush writing gradually from
the simplest dot to the full range of strokes, then to the writing of characters and
calligraphy pieces. Each character in the writing model will be marked to indicate
its meaning in English and the sequence of its strokes. You may choose for yourself
what characters to practice writing and how many of them to learn by heart. The
most important thing is to keep learning: to focus on your practical goals, to relax,
and to move forward one step at a time.
For learners in the West, a course on Chinese calligraphy is like a journey to
discover the unknown and the unfamiliar, and to find unknown qualities within
yourself. Art can only be known through experience. What you will learn from this
experience depends on how you approach the task. This book is a guide to equip
you with the ability to appreciate the unfamiliar by looking at it with fresh eyes.
DisCUssion QUestions
1. How is Chinese calligraphy different from, for example, English calligra-
phy in terms of scripts, writing instruments, and societal roles?
2. What do you hope to learn by using this book? Having clear goals in mind
will help you achieve them.
20
c h a p t e r t wo
Writing instruments and
training Procedures
This chapter lays out the preliminaries for training in Chinese brush writing. It in-
troduces writing instruments, their history, how they are made, as well as how they
are used. Preparations for writing, such as your state of mind, your writing space,
your posture, and how to hold your brush are also discussed. The three most impor-
tant factors in writing are identified: moisture, pressure, and the speed of the brush
are of critical importance at all times when writing is taking place.
tHe foUr treasUres in a CHinese stUDy
Chinese calligraphers throughout history have created countless works of art; many
have gained permanent recognition. However, Chinese writing would not have be-
come an art without its unique tools. Indispensable to the process of artistic creation
are the “four treasures in a Chinese study,” which are, in their proper order, brush
pen (bĭ 筆), ink (mò 墨), paper (zhĭ 紙), and ink stone (yàn 硯).
w r i t i n g i n s t ru m e n t s a n d t r a i n i n g p r o c e d u r e s
21
THE BRUSH
Among the four treasures, the Chinese writing brush plays the primary role in writ-
ing. The techniques of calligraphy are collectively referred to as “brushwork.”
The most distinctive feature of the brush is its flexibility. The tuft is made of
hair from such animals as goats, weasels, rabbits, and horses. Other animals that
provide hair for brushes include badgers, foxes, chickens, cats, and deer. Different
types of animal hair create varying degrees of firmness and softness, from the softest
rabbit hair to the stiffest horse hair. In addition, the parts of the animal’s body from
which the hair is taken and the season in which it is collected affect the quality of
the brush.
Whether to use a soft or a hard brush depends on the writing style and the skills
of the writer. Beginners are usually advised to use a brush with either goat hair or
mixed hair. The most commonly used types are the following.
Goat hair is typically white and usually soft. Soft-hair brushes, although more
difficult to control, allow more variation of strokes. Because they are
also able to hold more ink, they are good for writing large characters.
Weasel hair, usually brown, is known for its elasticity and resilience. Being
stiff and hard, these brushes do not hold a large amount of ink and are
usually used to write relatively small characters.
Mixed hair is more versatile; one brush can be used for several different
tasks.
Each type of hair lends its own assets to the whole. For example, horse hair, be-
cause of its stiffness, does not hold together when wet. Thus a writing brush could
have a core of stiff horse hair surrounded by soft, sticky goat hair to hold the bristles
together. (See Figure 2.1).
Brushes vary in both length and thickness, and brush size affects stroke size. The
size of the brush one should use depends on the size of the characters to be written.
For writing characters that are 1.5 to 2 square inches in size, for example, brushes
with tufts that are 1 to 1.5 inches long are appropriate. If you plan to produce callig-
raphy pieces with inscriptions (written in characters smaller than those in the main
text), you may want to have a smaller brush as well.
Chinese writing brushes have four important qualities.
Fineness. For maximum precision, the tip of the brush should be able to
form a fine point that is extremely sensitive and pliable.
Evenness. The Chinese writing brush has a unique structure in which the
long hairs at the core serve as the spine and those of the outside layer are
of the same length. In between are some shorter hairs so that ink will
c h i n e s e w r i t i n g a n d c a l l i g r a p hy
22
well up in the resulting pocket and be released when pressure is applied
to the brush. The longer hairs, which are trimmed to an even length,
should all meet at a point. During writing, these hairs hit the paper at
the same time and distribute ink evenly.
Roundness. The tuft of a Chinese calligraphy brush should be cone-shaped,
full, and round, which enables it to move easily in all directions.
Flexibility and resilience. The Chinese writing brush is flexible so that it can
be used to produce strokes of various shapes and thicknesses. Compared
to Western watercolor paintbrushes, Chinese writing brushes are usu-
ally stiffer. When the brush is lifted off the paper, its tuft should bounce
back to its original shape (or close to it) so that additional strokes can
be written before the tuft requires straightening. Such broad capacity
and versatility give the brush the power of expression. This is why the
Chinese brush can be used for painting as well as writing.
The brush can be a work of art in itself. Because the bristles must serve a purely
functional purpose, the handle is reserved for decorative expression. An array of
impressive materials can be used to make the handle: gold, silver, ivory, porcelain,
jade, and red sandalwood, although the most common is bamboo. It can be further
decorated by carving it into a desired shape or figure, or by carving calligraphy into
the handle itself, much as seals, ink stones, and ink sticks are decorated.
Figure 2.1. Chinese writing brushes on a brush stand.
[ photo by wendan li ]
w r i t i n g i n s t ru m e n t s a n d t r a i n i n g p r o c e d u r e s
23
The writing brush originated in China in the Neolithic period. Traditionally,
the Qin dynasty general Meng Tian (ca. 200 BCE) is credited with its invention.
However, red or black brush strokes were found on the oracle bones of the Shang
dynasty (ca. 1700–ca. 1100 BCE), which had been applied as guides on the shell and
bone pieces before the characters were carved. The earliest brush, rabbit hair on a
bamboo stem, dating to the Warring States period (475–221 BCE), was discovered
at an archaeological site near the city of Changsha (Hunan Province), which was
a major economic, cultural, and military center of the Chu state.1 Today the best
brushes are thought to be “Hu brushes” 湖筆 Hú bı̌, made in Huzhou of Zhejiang
Province, owing to their long manufacturing history since the Jin dynasty (265–
420) and the high-quality goat hair in the area.
The tuft of a new brush is always glued together to prevent damage during ship-
ping. Before using a new brush, soak the tuft in lukewarm water for twenty to thirty
minutes; then rinse out the glue and gently loosen the bristles. Before writing, make
sure there is no loose hair, because that will destroy the appearance of the stroke.
Take special care of the tuft and thoroughly rinse out the ink under a cold tap with
gently running water every time you finish practicing.
INK
Most beginners nowadays choose to use liquid ink, which is both convenient and
inexpensive. Experienced calligraphers, however, grind their own ink from ink
sticks so that they can vary the ink solution’s consistency for better control in get-
ting the specific effect they have in mind. Bottled liquid ink does not have this
adaptability.
The ink used in traditional Chinese calligraphy is always black. It is made pri-
marily from two ingredients: lampblack (or some form of carbon soot) and glue
made from animal hides or horns. These ingredients are mixed to form a claylike
paste, then put into wooden molds to be formed into small pieces of various shapes.
When the mold is removed and the pieces are dry, the ink sticks are then decorated
with painted designs and characters. Some of these designs can be quite elaborate.
To make ink for writing, pour a small amount of water onto an ink stone (de-
pending on the size of the ink stone and how much ink is needed for the project),
and then rub the ink stick in a smooth circular motion. As ink paste rubs off the
stick, it mixes with the water to form liquid ink. Care must be taken to ensure that
the proper amount of water is used so that the resulting mixture is neither too runny
nor too thick. If the ink is very thick, it will not run freely on paper. If it is very
thin, it will blot and expand into thick lines. Enough ink to compose the entire
piece must be mixed at the outset, as ink from consecutive mixings is never exactly
the same hue or consistency. Having to remix ink in the middle of a piece would
lead to undesirable differences in the color and overall character of the writing.
c h i n e s e w r i t i n g a n d c a l l i g r a p hy
24
Although the ink is mixed with water, it becomes waterproof when applied to
the paper. Chinese ink does not fade the way that Western ink does when exposed
to light, and thus it can last far longer than Western ink. That is why the ink on
ancient Chinese scrolls and paintings is still very clear even when the paper has
changed color with age.
Chinese ink is easily diluted with water into different shades of blackness. To
a layperson, ink is simply black; but to a Chinese artist, there are many colors and
tonalities. In traditional calligraphy a uniform tone of ink is applied throughout
a work, whereas in painting different shades of blackness (thin or thick ink) can
be used. In modern calligraphy, however, experienced calligraphers adapt the ink
method from painting to add artistic effects by varying the light and dark grada-
tions of ink on a single piece of work. They purposely use runnier or thicker ink to
express ideas or feelings in the writing. For example, a lot of ink makes for fatter,
bolder characters, which could represent heavy ideas or thoughts, whereas light,
thin characters written with less ink may express lofty visions and ideals. In a solid
stroke, the ink sinks into the paper to produce a sturdy line, while a swift brush
stroke produces lines with white streaks. In this sense, brush and ink go hand in
hand and depend on each other for artistic expression. Because ink is mostly water
and the basic action in Chinese calligraphy is largely managing a flow of water with
a soft brush, the writer must take control while—literally—going with the flow.
Ink is not only important as a practical tool in calligraphy, it also carries cultural
significance. Through the centuries, ink stick making has evolved into an art. Ink
sticks may carry as much artistic value as the calligraphy they are used to compose.
Valued ink sticks, which are painted with natural mineral colors and valued by ink
connoisseurs, feature engraved designs of mountains, rivers, trees, and often fine ex-
amples of calligraphy as well. Even today, ink sticks are adorned with characters that
range from the name of the manufacturer to full poems or pictures. Many museums
in China house ancient ink sticks and feature the works of ink makers throughout
the ages (see Figure 2.2).
Figure 2.2. ink sticks of the Ming dynasty (made around
1400 ce) with calligraphy and dragon design in gold.
Collection of the national Palace Museum (taipei).
[ from masterpieces of chinese writing materials in the
national palace museum, p. 6. reproduced by permission from
the national palace museum ]
w r i t i n g i n s t ru m e n t s a n d t r a i n i n g p r o c e d u r e s
25
Ink is believed to have developed in China as early as 3000 BCE, although most
sources point to a date around 2500 BCE for its official creation. While no reference
to the use of black ink appears in the literary records of this period, archaeological
evidence indicates that some kind of writing fluid was used as early as the Neolithic
Age and much more commonly in the Shang dynasty. Chemical microanalysis of
red and black inscriptions of characters on oracle bones dating from the Shang
shows that the black is a carbon mixture similar to traditional Chinese ink.2 Ink in
the form of ink cakes first appeared during the Han period (206 BCE–220 CE).
The cakes had evolved into ink sticks, similar to the ones used today, by the Tang
period (618–907 CE). Also since the Tang dynasty, Huizhou in Anhui Province has
produced the best ink, called Huīmò 徽墨 (Hui ink).
PAPER
For Chinese calligraphy, coarse-textured and absorbent paper is used. The best kind
is Xuan paper 宣紙 xuānzhı̌ (“rice paper” in English) produced in Anhui Province.
It is made of plant fiber and thus has good tensile strength (surface tension). Xuan
paper is white and delicate, doesn’t tear easily, and can be preserved for a long time.
Owing to its absorbency, the paper responds well to different qualities and amounts
of ink in the brush by showing a variety of effects. When a very wet brush with
watery ink moves across the paper, the stroke will be dark in the middle with lighter
shades of ink at the sides. If a relatively dry brush with thick ink sweeps quickly
across the paper, white streaks will be seen in the stroke. These techniques and ef-
fects add variety and interest to one’s work.
The invention of paper was credited to Cai Lun in about 105 CE, although
archaeological findings suggest that the use of paper, probably of inferior quality,
started in an earlier period.3 Papermaking technology, which provides ideal media
for brush writing, has played an indispensable role in the development of Chinese
calligraphy into a true and unique art. Before paper was invented, China had a his-
tory of writing on wooden and bamboo strips as well as other materials for more
than a thousand years. After paper was invented, it was favored by artists and cal-
ligraphers because of its absorbent nature and the variety of textures and finishes it
offered. However, paper did not immediately become widely available or affordable.
From anecdotes of famous calligraphers, we know that those from poor families
practiced writing on banana leaves, palm leaves, stones, walls, or even in the dirt
when they were young. Paper gradually replaced fabrics (such as silk) and other ma-
terials that had long been used for painting and writing. Techniques and processes
of papermaking were brought by Buddhist monks from China to Korea and Japan,
and then gradually to the West.
Traditionally, Chinese calligraphy is always done on white paper, although other
types of paper are also used for special occasions, such as red for festivals. Paper may
c h i n e s e w r i t i n g a n d c a l l i g r a p hy
26
also be sprayed with gold flakes or feature faint background designs. Nowadays,
works in modern calligraphy are often done on colored backgrounds.
In the United States, the most commonly found paper for East Asian painting and
calligraphy is a Japanese product called sumi (ink) paper. But beginners may use blank
newsprint, which is less expensive, for practice. It is recommended that beginners ap-
ply the brush to the coarse side of the paper, to develop hand and wrist strength.
INK STONES
The Chinese ink stone can be compared to a Western inkwell, although their func-
tions in fact are very different. Because Western calligraphy and writing are typically
done with a pen and a much more transient form of ink, the Western inkwell serves
only one purpose: holding ink. The Chinese ink stone, by contrast, serves multiple
purposes. It is a surface on which an ink stick can be ground into ink, a container
for holding ink, a paperweight, a decorative piece of art in itself, and, depending on
its quality and design, a collector’s item. (See Figure 2.3).
Ink stones (or ink slabs) are typically made of a fine, dark, solid natural stone
that is flat and smooth, with a hollowed-out portion to hold ink. They come in all
sizes—the biggest have to be carried by several people! Calligraphers and painters
whose work requires large quantities of ink and those who grind their own ink usu-
ally use large ink stones; the ones for ordinary uses are four to eight inches in size.
An ink stone should be heavy enough that it is not tipped over easily and it will not
move when the ink is ground against it. During ink making, when an ink stick is
Figure 2.3. Chinese ink stone. [ photo by wendan li ]
w r i t i n g i n s t ru m e n t s a n d t r a i n i n g p r o c e d u r e s
27
rubbed in a circular motion across the depression in the center of the ink stone, the
slightly rough surface of the ink stone slowly grinds off small particles of the ink
stick and mixes them with the water. Because the process is slow and rather time-
consuming, liquid ink is more practical. However, experienced calligraphers often
choose to grind their own ink, especially when they intend to produce unusual
tonalities or consistencies of ink for special purposes.
The quality of the ink stone directly affects the quality of the ink made from it
and the speed at which the ink forms. The surface of ink stones is not supposed to
be too smooth or too coarse. If the stone is too smooth, it does not yield ink. If it is
too rough, the ink will be ground into pieces that are too large to form a fine liquid.
Another quality necessary in an ink stone is the ability to preserve the wetness of
the ink that is ground and left on it. If a stone is too porous, it will absorb the liquid
ink and cause it to dry out much faster than it can be used. The best stones, called
Duānyàn 端硯, come from Duanzhou in Guangdong Province.
Although art is said to come from the ink stone, the ink stone is a precious
object in itself. Along with its function in conjunction with ink, brush, and paper,
the presence of ornate, intricate, and delicately carved decorations may make it an
invaluable piece of art. Some collectors’ items are made of valuable materials such
as jade and carved with pine trees, fish, dragons, or lotus flowers along the edges.
Although nothing short of a masterful invention, the Chinese ink stone is meant to
have a subtle beauty. It rests at the calligrapher’s side, sitting at the top corner of the
work, as the artist pours out heart and soul onto a piece of paper.
The four treasures of Chinese calligraphy—brush, paper, ink, and ink stone—
have played a crucial role in Chinese culture. The true beauty of calligraphy lies
in the fact that they work together to express artistic intentions. Historically, they
were major inventions that spearheaded the evolution of knowledge and the ability
to pass that knowledge down through texts and records. Culturally, they represent
artistic achievements that are uniquely Chinese. In the practice of calligraphy, they
are the scholar’s invaluable treasures, used to give life and definition to the ideas and
emotions of a calligrapher, providing a medium by which deeply personal senti-
ments and emotions are preserved for later generations.
tHe traininG ProCess
For beginning students, learning to use a Chinese writing brush can be an awkward
experience at first. The hand may feel clumsy because the brush is held differently
than other writing instruments. You may feel like a child because even writing a
straight line takes so much effort. The bristles are difficult to control, and it is easy
to make foolish mistakes.
Learning Chinese calligraphy is more than learning to write with a Chinese
brush. It is a sophisticated form of visual, tactile, and mental training that demands
c h i n e s e w r i t i n g a n d c a l l i g r a p hy
28
(1) a calm and relaxed mind, (2) correct posture, (3) concentration on the task at
hand, (4) coordination of mind and body, and (5) patience. In China, traditional
teaching and learning practice includes a stage of tracing and copying to help the
learner acquire these abilities.
THE IMPORTANCE OF TRACING AND COPYING
At the beginning stage, learners embark upon the task of acquiring a number of
new skills: how to handle the brush to produce various strokes, the pressure to apply
and the proper amount of ink to keep in the brush, and the speed with which the
hand moves the brush. Tracing and copying from models is always the first step, first
faithfully stroke by stroke, and then character by character until the spirit of the art
penetrates the student’s mind. Traditional Chinese training methods have always put
a strong emphasis on imitation and copying. This is often puzzling to Westerners,
who are used to being urged to express themselves and avoid imitation.
In Chinese calligraphy, in fact in Chinese art in general, imitation and copying
are considered virtues. Good copies and imitations are appreciated as well as the
originals. This is why, over the course of the long history of Chinese calligraphy and
painting, old masters’ works have constantly been copied. One often sees works that
openly acknowledge being “an imitation of so-and-so.” In fact, many of the famous
early calligraphy works extant today are copies rather than originals.
It is believed that a beginner must first learn the essentials from masters of the
past before trying to develop an individual style. Tracing and copying, like gathering
information by reading books, are shortcuts or aids in learning the fundamentals and
establishing a solid foundation. For a schoolchild, learning may eventually happen
without reading books, but the discovery process will be much longer. In calligra-
phy learning imitation is also a process leading to discovery, a discovery of the good
qualities in the model and the techniques used to produce them, a discovery of one’s
own limitations so that efforts can be made to overcome them, and a discovery of
one’s options in individual freedom without violating general principles. It is also
through imitation and copying that the tradition of the art is carried on. Lack of
sufficient training in the necessary principles and techniques will result in chaos.
Tracing and copying also help to develop the coordination of mind and body.
When one is an experienced artist, the mind leads the brush; that is, the mind
knows what to do, and the body is able to implement the plan. Such coordination
and confidence, so important for the creation of art, are often difficult for begin-
ning learners. All too often, writing is started without a plan for how to proceed so
that, in the middle of a stroke, the question may pop up: “What am I supposed to
do now?” Writing is a productive process with several components, from projecting
an image of the end product in your mind, to knowing the creative steps leading to
the end product, to having the skills to faithfully produce the specific effects in your
w r i t i n g i n s t ru m e n t s a n d t r a i n i n g p r o c e d u r e s
29
Figure 2.5. “red tracing” (shown in grey here).
mind. Tracing and copying are techniques that break down the components and
focus on training in one area at a time. A three-step procedure is followed to help
learners gain more and more control gradually, from skills of the brush, to execution
following a model, and finally to a full creative agenda.
TRILOGY IN TRAINING
The training procedure process consists of three steps.
Tracing
Tracing means writing over the characters in your copybook. There are two forms
of tracing. In outline tracing the outline of a character is printed on paper (Figure
2.4). The learner fills the outline with black ink. Before model sheets with the
printed outline of characters became available, students traced the outline of the
characters manually with pencil, pen, or the fine tip of a brush and then filled in
the outlines with black ink. Even today, devoted students still do this, as tracing the
outline of characters manually is considered a good way to study the structure and
details of model characters before writing them with a brush. The other form of
tracing, red tracing, is writing over characters already printed in red with black ink
(Figure 2.5). In tracing, since you can see exactly what your end product should
Figure 2.4. outline tracing.
c h i n e s e w r i t i n g a n d c a l l i g r a p hy
30
look like, your mind can concentrate on building the skills to produce the effect.
Your goal at this stage, therefore, is to learn to maneuver the brush to produce the
shape of brush strokes already shown on paper.
The focus of tracing is mainly on the shape of strokes. You should try to cover
the size and shape of the strokes completely and exactly as shown, no more and
no less.
Copying
When copying, the model is placed to one side and then imitated in a two-step
procedure. First, look at the model and try to keep the details in your mind. Then,
produce what you have in your mind on paper. The challenge at this stage, then, is
to observe the important features of the model and faithfully reproduce them. To
assist learners in this process, a grid is usually laid both over the model characters
and in your writing space. Gazing at the grid that divides the model into small sec-
tions will help you gauge the position, shape, and size of the model. Then, using
the writing space with the same grid pattern, you will know exactly where a stroke
should start and end. This helps in positioning the strokes and controlling the size
of the characters you write.
The focus in copying, as the second step in learning, should be mainly on the
structure of characters. Note that characters only take up about 80 percent of the
square space; don’t forget to leave “breathing space” around each character.
We are going to use two grid patterns. First is the eight-cell pattern that divides
a character space like a pie. Because this grid resembles the Chinese character 米
mĭ, it is called the mĭ-grid in Chinese (米字格 mı̌zìgé). The second, the square-grid
pattern (方格 fānggé), defines the space for a character without further dividing it
(Figure 2.6). The eight-cell grid pattern is for beginners, and the square grid is for
people with some experience. There are other commonly used grid patterns, for
Figure 2.6. Grid patterns for copying.
8-cell Grid Square Grid 9-cell Grid
w r i t i n g i n s t ru m e n t s a n d t r a i n i n g p r o c e d u r e s
31
example, the nine-cell grid (九宮格 jiǔgōnggé), which divides the space for a char-
acter horizontally and vertically.
Copying is first done stroke by stroke and then character by character. Carefully
studying the model before writing remains an indispensable step. Tracing or copy-
ing without thinking, even dozens of times, leads nowhere. It is not the number of
times the model is practiced that counts, but the quality of the writing. Before writ-
ing a stroke, make sure you know by heart exactly how it should be written from
the moment the brush touches the paper to the moment it is lifted. Each stroke
must be made in one continuous movement. Once you start, you cannot turn your
eye to the model to see how you should proceed, because doing so will slow down
your brush, and your stroke will show marks of hesitation. Similarly, after you com-
plete a stroke, you cannot go back to touch it up. If you do, the corrected area will
show traces once the ink is dry, and the entire piece will be spoiled.
Study your model character to see the correct sequence for writing the strokes,
the position of the strokes, their size compared to other strokes in the same charac-
ter, how the strokes are put together to form components, and how the components
are put together to form the character. After you have copied the character, compare
the character you have written with the model to see the differences and determine
what needs to be done to make your writing better. Then, write the same character
again. There should be improvement each time you repeat the same character.
Traditionally, characters in the Regular Script are divided into three different
sizes for practice: The large size (大楷 dàkǎi), which is about four square inches or
more for each character, the midsize (中楷 zhōngkǎi), about two square inches, and
the small size (小楷 xiǎokǎi), about half a square inch or less for each character. The
grid size for the brush-writing exercises in this book is about two square inches, that
for midsize characters.
Free Writing
The third stage is for those who have gained confidence in the structure and size
of characters and are ready to write without using models. An experienced writer,
having learned the basics by tracing and copying, develops a signature style that is
personal but, still, is usually based on or influenced by a calligraphy master of the
past. Nonetheless, even an experienced writer makes plans before actually picking
up the brush to write.
Since imitating models is such an important step in learning, a good model
must be chosen. This is why calligraphy learners over the centuries have always used
works of renowned calligraphy masters such as Yan Zhenqing and Liu Gongquan
as models. Switching between models should be avoided. In this book, we use the
writing of Wang Xizhi, the calligraphy “sage” of the Jin dynasty. The writing styles
of these three masters will be discussed and compared in Chapter 10. When tracing
c h i n e s e w r i t i n g a n d c a l l i g r a p hy
32
and copying, try your best to capture the good qualities of your model. You will
profit from this practice by avoiding the pitfalls old masters have uncovered. This is
an efficient way to shorten the path to good writing.
GettinG reaDy to Write
PREPARE YOUR MIND AND YOUR WRITING SPACE
Start writing with a quiet and relaxed mind. One has to be calm and able to focus and
concentrate. There is no point writing in a hurry or when your mind is not ready.
You also need a comfortable space on the table so that you can sit in the correct
posture and move your arms freely without bumping into anything. If you copy
from a model book, put your model close by so that you can easily see it (usually on
the left of the writing paper if you use your right hand to write). Use your ink stone
as a paperweight to keep the top of your writing paper in place.
POSTURE
Body
Unlike Western painting with its vertical or tilted canvas, Chinese calligraphy is
mostly done on a horizontal, flat surface. Beginners should write at a table, although
experienced writers may also write on the floor.
The weight of your body should be kept forward, about two or three inches
away from the table. Your center of gravity should be the lower abdomen, which
is also the core of your torso. During writing, no matter how your arms move, this
should be the center that generates force that passes through the brush to the char-
acters. When both feet are placed solidly on the floor in front of you, you will be
sitting in the position known as the “horse stand.” This posture helps to bring the
center of gravity forward and gives you the flexibility to control the movement of
your arms. Both your elbows should be on the table, away from your body. Do not
lean too much over the table, and do not tilt your head too far sideways.
Wrist
The size of the characters to be written governs the position of the wrist. Usually
for a beginner, for practical purposes, your wrist should be resting on the table. This
is so especially when writing relatively small characters of one to two square inches,
because such writing only requires the manipulation of the brush by finger and
wrist movements. Training in brush writing usually starts with characters of this size
to develop finger maneuvering skills. As an alternative, some people cushion their
wrist with their nonwriting hand, palm down.
w r i t i n g i n s t ru m e n t s a n d t r a i n i n g p r o c e d u r e s
33
For more experienced writers, the “lifted wrist” position can be used to obtain
greater freedom and particularly for larger characters. In this posture, the wrist is
lifted one to two inches off the table, but the elbow should be touching the table.
The “suspended wrist” position, in which both the wrist and elbow are lifted, is
the most sophisticated. This is for writing characters of larger sizes.
Writing Hand
Keep your thumb pointing up and all the other fingertips pointing down. The way
you handle your brush is of the utmost importance. Owing to the nature of the
Chinese writing brush, the way you hold it will affect the quality of your strokes. As
shown in Figure 2.7, the brush is held upright. Your thumb should be tilted with
the nail pointing up; all the other fingertips should be pointing down. Your grip on
the brush stem should be comfortable and flexible, similar to the way a dart is held
before throwing.
Follow these four principles:
1. Your palm should be loose and hollow, curved enough to hold a small
egg. If you squeeze your fingers too tightly toward your palm, you lose
f lexibility.
2. All your fingers should be involved in controlling and maneuvering
the brush. Refer to Figure 2.8 for finger positions and height. The thumb
and the forefinger are responsible for holding the brush at the correct
height, and the middle finger gently pushes the brush inward (toward the
palm). The fourth finger supplies pressure onto the other side of the brush,
to counterbalance the inward pressure from the middle finger. The little
Figure 2.7. standard brush grip.
c h i n e s e w r i t i n g a n d c a l l i g r a p hy
34
finger should assist the fourth finger naturally but should not touch the
brush, the palm, or the paper when writing.
3. Both of your forearms should be kept level with your elbows on the
table, to help with brush control. Do not drop your elbow down from the
edge of the table.
4. For maximum f lexibility, all muscles directly involved in writing
should be relaxed—this includes your fingers, wrists, arms, and shoulders.
Be careful not to tense your neck either. Strained muscles and a tight grip
limit movement, the hand is more likely to shake, and you will become
fatigued more easily.
Brush
When writing, the brush stem should be kept vertical most of the time. Concen-
trate your mind on the bristles, whose impact is strongest at the tip. You will rarely
write with more than one-third of the brush at the tip. The upper two-thirds of
Figure 2.8. finger positions.
w r i t i n g i n s t ru m e n t s a n d t r a i n i n g p r o c e d u r e s
35
the bristles act as an ink reservoir so that you can finish several strokes before re-
charging your brush with ink. To deposit ink into this reservoir, the brush should
be fully saturated. Saturation also stabilizes the spine of the brush and holds the hair
together. If only the tip of your brush is dipped into ink, the bristles will become
dry and split too soon.
The brush operates most effectively when all the hairs are relatively parallel. The
easiest way to maintain this alignment is to avoid pressing down too hard on the
paper. The correct amount of pressure causes the bristles to bend but does not crush
their elastic spring. If the brush becomes bent and twisted, readjust it by dipping it
back into the ink or by brushing it lightly against the side of the ink stone.
Paper
The paper for writing should be placed straight on the table in such a way that the
bottom edge of the paper is parallel with the edge of the table. This may be difficult
at first for some learners who are used to writing English with the paper turned
sideways. Doing that when writing Chinese with a brush would cause you to lose
your ability to judge, for example, whether your vertical lines are going straight
down as required.
Breathing
Write with controlled and continuous exhalation. There is no need to hold your
breath when you write. Breathe smoothly with the brush, exhaling as you write
and inhaling when the brush is between strokes. It is difficult to write a strong and
steady line while inhaling. Become calm before writing. There is no point in writ-
ing in a rush. Also, do not overconcentrate, as this will make you stiff, tense, and
tired.
Eyes
Look at your character as you are writing it. Whenever your brush is moving on
paper, your eyes should be fixed on your writing. A common beginner’s error is to
look back and forth between your model and your own writing while the brush is
moving. This movement creates hesitant strokes, and the lines may also swell as you
look away and your writing slows down. To avoid these problems, make sure you
know by heart how to write a stroke from the beginning to the end and its exact
position in a character before you put your brush to the paper so that you do not
have to look at your model in the middle of writing the stroke.
c h i n e s e w r i t i n g a n d c a l l i g r a p hy
36
The Free Hand
Use the free hand as paperweight. Lay the elbow of your free arm on the table, and
use the fingertips of your free hand to hold the paper in place when writing. Hold
the paper at the top when writing a vertical line and at its side edge when writing
a horizontal line.
MoistUre, PressUre, anD sPeeD
Three important, constant concerns during writing are moisture, pressure, and
speed.
MOISTURE
The brush should be slightly damp before it is dipped into the ink. As you dip, first
give the bristles a chance to absorb as much ink as they can, and then gently squeeze
out excess ink by sliding the tuft against the edge of the well of the ink stone. Do
not apply too much pressure to the bristles as you slide, as that will break the ink
reservoir in the brush center and overly drain it. Proper dipping and squeezing of
excess ink will allow all the hairs in the brush, especially those in the center, to be
involved in the management of ink in writing. A brush with a dry center will easily
split, which in turn will make it impossible to form a solid line on paper. The ab-
sorption and draining of ink into and from the brush is like a person’s inhaling and
exhaling: a large vital capacity and proper coordination are essential for prolonged,
smooth movements.
How much ink should you have in the brush before writing? If you can see
ink accumulating at the tip of your brush, you have too much. However, you need
enough ink to write at least a couple of strokes before the brush runs dry. A little
trial and error will help you develop good instincts about this. Remember, when
writing the Regular Script, characters in the same piece of work should look the
same in terms of the amount of ink used. Even in modern styles, ink variations are
by design rather than by accident. Therefore, control of ink is among the first things
to be learned and experimented with in brush writing.
Try to start a stroke with a straight brush and the right amount of ink. That is,
no hair is bent or sticking out, and the bristles are straightened and form a point at
the tip. After writing a couple of strokes, if the bristles are bent and/or split, you
should straighten them out on your ink stone. This is also an opportunity to re-
charge your brush with more ink.
w r i t i n g i n s t ru m e n t s a n d t r a i n i n g p r o c e d u r e s
37
PRESSURE
Pressure is the amount of force employed to press the brush down on the paper.
The harder you press, the wider the line. Because calligraphy brushes are so flexible,
pressure control is the most important and yet difficult skill to master. The harder
you press down, the more difficult it becomes for the brush to maintain its original
resilient strength. Once a tuft of hairs is distorted, it needs to be fixed on the ink
stone to regain its elastic power.
SPEED
The speed of the brush, another important concern, is determined by a number of
factors: the script that is chosen, the thickness of the desired strokes, and the amount
of ink in the brush. When writing, the brush will discharge ink as long as it remains
in contact with the paper. To avoid blotting, the brush must be kept in constant
motion. Varied speed combined with the flow of ink produces visual effects. Mov-
ing too fast produces a hasty line; the strokes will not look solid enough. When
the brush is moving too slowly, the line will show signs of hesitation; the strokes
may also run or bleed. In general, a wet brush should move more quickly and a dry
brush more slowly to give the right amount of tone to the stroke. Also, speed up on
straight lines and slow down on curves and at corners.
The control of moisture, pressure, and speed are important skills to acquire.
It takes a great deal of experimentation and practice, as you begin writing, to put
these skills together to produce desired line quality. The next three chapters contain
detailed descriptions of individual strokes and the techniques involved in writing
them.
DisCUssion QUestions anD WritinG PraCtiCe
1. What are the special qualities of the Chinese writing brush that make it an
ideal instrument for Chinese calligraphy?
2. Discuss the role ink plays in Chinese calligraphy.
3. You will be able to write a character well if you write it two dozen times. Is
this true? Why or why not?
4. Prepare your brush for writing by following the instructions described in this
chapter.
38
c h a p t e r t h re e
Brush techniques
and Basic strokes i
Knowledge of Chinese brushwork is a key to understanding not only Chinese
calligraphy but also Chinese painting. In this and the next two chapters, we ex-
plore some basic brushwork techniques. We also go over the major stroke types
in brush writing, their variant forms, and how they are used to compose Chinese
characters. After reading about each technique and stroke type, you will be guided
through hands-on practice first writing individual strokes step by step and then
tracing the provided model characters.
BrUsH teCHniQUes (1):
PressinG DoWn tHe BrUsH anD BrinGinG it UP
The most important feature of the Chinese writing brush is its soft, elastic bristles,
which allow variation in the width of the strokes as the calligrapher applies pres-
sure to the brush or lifts it up. In fact, calligraphy writing can be seen as a process
of alternately lifting up and pressing down (Figure 3.1). Thus, pressing down the
brush and bringing it up are the most basic calligraphic skills. Even when writing
a straight line, one needs to vary the thickness of the stroke. Experienced writers
b r u s h t e c h n i q u e s a n d b a s i c s t ro ke s i
39
are able to control the brush in order to produce desired stroke shapes. Sometimes,
at a sharp turn or a point where a change of direction is needed in a stroke, the
brush is lifted almost (but not completely) off the page and held delicately poised
on the tip before taking off in a new direction.
As can be seen in Figure 3.1, although the stem of the brush is kept nearly ver-
tical, the force applied to the brush tip as it is pressed down is not directly vertical
but rather slightly to one side of the tip. This is to keep the hairs all bent together
in the same direction. A simple up-and-down lifting motion should produce a
brush mark that is pear- or paisley-shaped, with the narrow end pointing to the
ten o’clock position. The results of both pressing and lifting can change, depend-
ing on the amount of pressure applied. For beginners, brush control requires much
practice until the hand can direct the brush at will and produce forms of infinite
variety. It also takes considerable practice to produce smooth transitions when the
pressure is changed while the brush is in motion.
Now, to get the feel of the brush, let’s pick it up and try a few things.
First, sit up (in the “horse-stand” posture) and hold the brush correctly. With
no ink in your brush, try pressing it down on a piece of paper and then lifting it
up, as shown in Figure 3.1. Repeat this a few times.
Second, dip about two-thirds of the brush in ink and then gently squeeze the
bristles along the side of the inkwell to get rid of excess ink.
Now, with ink in your brush, practice pressing down and lifting to make dots
on the paper. You may want to try this on normal printing paper first so that you
can take your time to gain a feel for how different amounts of pressure interact
with the resilience of the brush. Writing on rice paper requires more confidence
and experience because of its absorbency; the amount of ink in the brush also plays
a bigger role on more sensitive paper.
Figure 3.1. Pressing down the brush and bringing it up.
c h i n e s e w r i t i n g a n d c a l l i g r a p hy
40
Next, hold the brush loosely and draw lines of different shapes: straight lines,
curves, and zigzags. Try to loosen up your wrist. You will find that the brush will
move more smoothly over the paper and produce clearer shapes when it has been
freshly dipped in ink. After a couple of strokes the brush will become twisted and
dry, which makes it more difficult to create smooth lines. This is when you need
to go back to your ink stone to fix the brush and recharge it with more ink. If you
load the brush with too much ink, your lines will begin to spread out in blotches
on the absorbent paper.
Now, write a horizontal line across the paper, alternately pressing and lifting
the brush. Try to make the transitions as smooth as possible. This will also give
you a chance to feel the elasticity of the brush. You may also want to draw the
lines and patterns shown in Figure 3.2 in order to gain more control over your
brush.
an overvieW of tHe MaJor stroKe tyPes
As described in Chapter 1, the most distinctive feature of Chinese writing is that
characters are constructed not from letters such as those in English, but from ba-
sic units called “strokes.” A stroke is one continuous line of writing, made from
beginning to end without any intentional break. In alphabetic languages such
as English, letters are arranged in a linear order (e.g., from left to right) to form
words. In Chinese writing, however, strokes are assembled in a two-dimensional
space to form characters. As an example, the word “sun” in English is spelled with
letters, s-u-n, that are read from left to right to indicate its pronunciation. In Chi-
nese the character for “sun” is 日, pronounced rì. This character consists of four
strokes: one vertical line , a turn , plus two horizontal lines . The strokes
do not correspond to sounds, nor do they carry meaning. They are basic materials
used to build up characters.
An initial glance at Chinese brush writing may give you the impression that
there are countless ways of writing strokes and that the characters they form are
Figure 3.2. Lines to practice before writing strokes.
b r u s h t e c h n i q u e s a n d b a s i c s t ro ke s i
41
often forbiddingly complicated. This perception relates to the pictographic origin of
Chinese characters, which is more fully discussed in Chapter 6. In the early devel-
opment of Chinese writing, any line could be used to compose writing symbols. It
was only gradually and over hundreds of years that lines in writing were abstracted
and stylized into eight major stroke types. The basic forms of the eight major stroke
types in the Regular Script of modern Chinese are displayed in Table 3.1.
The horizontal line and the vertical line are the most important, because they
determine the overall structure and the balance of a character. The single-direc-
tion lines (the first six types in Table 3.1) are the most basic. The last two stroke
types, which contain a change in direction, are called “combined strokes.”
It should be noted that each of these eight types can appear in varied forms.
Just like the seven basic notes of the tempered musical scale, which vary accord-
ing to the composition in which they are used, Chinese calligraphy strokes are
rendered differently according to the design of individual characters. In actual
writing, each calligrapher may also add his or her own characteristics to strokes
and characters to produce a personal style—this would be comparable to the same
musical notes played on the same instruments but by different musicians. The art
of calligraphy employs and combines various forms of the eight major stroke types
in a myriad of ways.
Name Stroke DirectioN of
WritiNg
Name iN chiNeSe
1 dot ↘ 點 diǎn
2 horizontal line → 橫 héng
3 vertical line ↓ 竪 shù
4 down-left ↙ 撇 piě
5 down-right ↘ 捺 nà
6 up-right ↗ 提 tí
7 hook
↓
↖
鈎 gōu
8 turn
→
↓
折 zhé
Table 3.1. the eight Major stroke types
c h i n e s e w r i t i n g a n d c a l l i g r a p hy
42
At first glance, the strokes seem simple. But the simplicity is deceptive. Re-
member: your task is not just to draw a line or to make a dot but to reproduce
the strokes you see in your model in exactly the same shape. This cannot be done
without a great deal of skill and control, which is gained only through practice.
A good way to start, even before taking up your brush, is to use your forefinger
to familiarize yourself with the steps of writing a stroke, following the numerical
sequence marked on the model strokes.
As will be discussed in Chapters 8 through 11, Chinese characters can be writ-
ten in a variety of script styles. Beginners usually start by learning and practicing
the Regular Script, which has the most standardized structure and the most com-
plete set of brush techniques. This style is also written with an upright and solemn
look. In China, children in elementary schools practice writing the Regular Script
before they move on to the Running Script in middle school. The traditional
wisdom of calligraphic study dictates that Regular, Running, and Cursive scripts
are three stages like standing, walking, and running. We all learned to stand still
first, before we attempted to walk and run. Without the ability to stand still, we
would fail at walking or running. Learning Chinese calligraphy is the same. The
brushwork in the Regular Script is the most basic, with explicit rules. For begin-
ning learners, it is the most essential script for the practice of basic brushwork skills
and character composition. After learning the Regular Script, you can venture on
to other styles of your choice.
Now, keeping in mind the concerns of moisture, pressure, and speed, let’s ex-
amine how individual strokes are written.
stroKe tyPe 1: tHe Dot
The dot is the most fundamental of the eight basic stroke types because the meth-
od by which dots are created is used to write many other strokes. A horizontal
line, for example, both starts and ends with the brush movement of the dot, and
so does the beginning of a vertical line. Furthermore, although they are usually
small in a character, dots play the role of adding vitality to the character as the eyes
add spirit to a person.
The dot in Chinese calligraphy can be formed in many different shapes. One
notable common feature is that they are never circular, as a dot is in English. In-
stead, the most typical Chinese dot is triangular, as shown in Figure 3.3.
Note that in Figure 3.3 (a) the line in the center of the stroke shows the direc-
tion of force applied in writing. Do not trace this line with the tip of your brush
as if it were a hard-tipped pen. Rather, the dot should be produced mainly by
pressing down the brush and lifting it up. The trace of the brush is illustrated in
(b). Familiarize yourself with this step-by-step procedure before trying to write a
dot with a brush (see page 200 in Appendix 1).
b r u s h t e c h n i q u e s a n d b a s i c s t ro ke s i
43
1. Starting from the upper left corner (1), press down at an angle of ap-
proximately 45 degrees so that the bottom of your brush reaches (2). Note
that although the brush stem is vertical, the force applied to the bristles is
not absolutely vertical, but rather slightly diagonal. In other words, when
the entire head of the brush is involved in writing, only one side of the
brush touches the paper (as in Figure 3.1).
2. Move the head of the brush slightly toward you and downward so
that the bottom reaches (3).
3. Push the bristles slightly away from you, to launch the brush in an
upward motion toward (4); gradually lift it off the paper.
Examples of dots in complete characters are shown in Figure 3.4.
VARIATIONS
The dot is the stroke with the largest number of variant forms. How a specific dot
should be written has a lot to do with its position in a character. Some dots are
quite distinct, as shown in Figure 3.5. When writing dots, you must attend to the
details patiently and try to grasp their individual characteristics.
In Figure 3.5, the dots in (1) are always on the character’s left side. Those in (2),
by contrast, are always on the right side. They are also written in opposite ways.
Note that the dots in (2) are longer than the basic dot shown in Figure 3.4; hence
they are named “long dots.” The dots in (3) are located at the bottom of characters
(a) (b)
Figure 3.3. the dot.
Figure 3.4. examples of the dot in characters.
c h i n e s e w r i t i n g a n d c a l l i g r a p hy
44
when two dots are written as a pair, one on the left, the other on the right. The
one on the left is always finished with a leftward movement and a pointed ending;
the one on the right is slightly longer than a normal dot. They are like two legs on
which the character stands and, therefore, should finish on an imagined horizontal
line. The characters in (4) have three dots arranged vertically, always on the left
side. In fact, the three dots form a semantic component meaning “water,” as will be
discussed in Chapter 6. Note also that the three dots are shaped differently from one
another. The characters in (5) have four dots at the bottom, which are also a seman-
tic component meaning “heat.” Be careful to observe how each dot is written.
The categorization of stroke types, like many other linguistic categories, has
grey areas. You may have noticed that in Figure 3.5 the dot in (3) looks similar to
a short down-left slant, but here it is treated as a dot. This dot always appears in
a pair of dots at the bottom of a character like two legs standing, one to the left,
the other to the right. A similar case is (4), the last dot at the bottom. Although it
looks similar to a right-up tick, it is considered a dot, and it always appears as the
last stroke in the component on the left side of a character.
Figure 3.5. variations of the dot.
b r u s h t e c h n i q u e s a n d b a s i c s t ro ke s i
45
stroKe tyPe 2: tHe HoriZontaL Line
Horizontal lines, like dots, can be written in different ways. Depending on its po-
sition in a character, a full horizontal line can function as a top beam (as in 下 xià,
“under”), a center sill (as in 六 liù, “six”), or a bottom bracket (as in 土 tǔ, “dirt”).
This stroke often determines the structure and stability of the entire character.
Thus it is important that it be written correctly. In shape, a full horizontal line is
thicker on both ends and thinner in the middle; the transition should be gradual,
as if the line is held at both ends and stretched out. Such a stroke, resembling the
shape of a piece of bone, gives the line a look of strength, as shown in Figure 3.6
below. Figure 3.7 provides examples of full horizontal lines in characters.
When writing a full horizontal line, follow this procedure (also see page 201
in Appendix 1).
1. Press down at (1) at approximately a 45-degree angle (the
same angle used in writing a dot). The tip of the brush remains
at (1) without moving to the right. Pause.
2. Slanting the brush handle slightly to the right, move the
bristles rightward toward (2), gradually lifting them slightly as
the brush approaches the middle of the stroke. The center of
the brush tip should remain to the left as the brush moves to
the right.
3. At (3), lift the brush slightly to bring the tip in line with the
rest of the bristles. This should be the highest point of the stroke.
4. Press down so that the thickest portion of the bristles
Figure 3.6. the horizontal line.
Figure 3.7. examples of the horizontal line in characters.
c h i n e s e w r i t i n g a n d c a l l i g r a p hy
46
reaches (4) at a 45-degree angle (the same angle you used for
the first point). Again, this is done without actually moving the
brush downward on the paper; the tip of the brush stays at (3).
5. Turn the bristles to the left, gradually lifting them as they
move toward (5).
Note that the line should be produced with no hesitation. In fact, the brush
can speed up slightly when writing the middle portion of the stroke. Because you
are using the technique known as center tip (discussed below), both the top and
bottom edges of the line should be smooth.
VARIATIONS
In characters with more than one horizontal line, only one of them, usually the
longest, is written in its full form. The others are simplified, often at the begin-
ning of the stroke, as shown in Figure 3.8. Such a horizontal line shows no clear
sign of pressing down at the beginning.
stroKe tyPe 3: tHe vertiCaL Line
A vertical line, like the backbone of a person, plays the role of pillar in a character.
As such, it should always be written upright and straight, like a soldier standing
at attention. The shape of a full vertical line (thicker at the ends, thinner in the
middle) is similar to that of a full horizontal line (see Figures 3.9 and 3.10).
The vertical line is made with similar movements to the horizontal line. Here
are the steps to follow (also see page 202 in Appendix 1).
1. Press down at (1) at a 45-degree angle so that the bottom
of the brush reaches (2).
2. Start moving the brush downward.
3. At (3), bring up the brush and adjust the position of the
tip so that it fills out the point.
4. Press down at a 45-degree angle so that the bottom of the
brush reaches (4).
5. Move back up toward (5), gradually lifting the brush from
the paper.
VARIATIONS
Alternatively, the same vertical line can be written as shown in (1) in Figure 3.11.
As a variant form, vertical lines are often written with a pointed ending at the
bottom, called a “vertical needle,” as shown in (2).
b r u s h t e c h n i q u e s a n d b a s i c s t ro ke s i
47
Figure 3.8. variations of the horizontal line.
Figure 3.9. the vertical line.
Figure 3.10. examples of the vertical line in characters.
traCinG
After practicing these three individual strokes, you can write some simple characters
beginning with outline tracing using the eight-cell grid (see pages 203–204 in
Appendix 1).
When tracing, try your best to cover the strokes exactly as they are written in
the model characters, no more and no less. Although the outline of the characters
is provided, you should always be aware of where the center of each character is.
c h i n e s e w r i t i n g a n d c a l l i g r a p hy
48
The strokes in each character follow a prescribed sequence. Throughout this book,
the stroke order in the Regular Script model characters is indicated by numbers
marked on the characters. You should always follow this order in writing, com-
pleting one stroke before moving on to the next. The importance of following the
prescribed stroke order is discussed in Chapter 5.
Traditionally, the direction of writing a Chinese text is vertical (top to bottom)
starting from the upper right corner of the page. Character columns are placed from
right to left. This book, however, arranges the practice of individual characters
horizontally, from left to right. Concentrate on one character, writing it repeatedly,
in order to make sustained progress before moving on to the next character.
DisCUssion QUestions anD WritinG PraCtiCe
1. Why do we practice writing Regular Script first?
2. What do you pay attention to when you trace a character?
3. Without looking at the book, verbalize the procedure of writing a dot, a
Figure 3.11. variations of the vertical line.
(1) (2)
Figure 3.12. examples of “vertical needles.”
b r u s h t e c h n i q u e s a n d b a s i c s t ro ke s i
49
horizontal line, and a vertical line. Verbalization is very important at the begin-
ning stage. You will write much better if you can verbally describe the details of
every step.
4. Practice the stroke types and their variations on pp. 200–202 in Appendix
1. Write on normal paper first to get a feel for the brush and the ink. When you
do it on absorbent paper, you will notice the difference and the need to adjust the
amount of ink in your brush. Remember, when you do outline tracing, fill the
stroke outlines exactly as they are, no more and no less. Pay attention to producing
the right shape of strokes by applying the right techniques. Follow the numbered
procedure, and do not skip any step.
5. Pages 203–204 in Appendix 1 contain two sets of model characters for the
chapter. For each set, trace first, then copy. When copying, try to retain the size
and structure of the model characters by using the grid. Follow the numbered
stroke order as a guide to forming characters. Stroke order rules will be discussed
in Chapter 5.
6. Check the way you hold your brush against Figure 2.7 three times to make
sure you do it correctly: before writing a page, in the middle of writing a page,
and when you finish writing a page.
50
c h a p t e r f o u r
Brush techniques
and Basic strokes ii
In the previous chapter, three basic stroke types were described. This chapter first
illustrates two important brush techniques that affect the quality of strokes. After
that, three more stroke types, the down-left slant, down-right slant, and right-up
tick, will be introduced. The last section discusses Chinese names, including how
Chinese names are chosen based on Western names.
BrUsH teCHniQUes (2):
Center tiP versUs siDe tiP
Tip, fēng 鋒, refers to the brush tip formed by the long hairs in the brush. Writing
with the tip of the brush either in the middle of the stroke or on one side of the
stroke are two different ways to produce brush lines. The center-tip technique, in
which the tip of the brush travels along the center line of the brush stroke (Figure
4.1), is a means to exert vigor and to produce full, sturdy, firm lines. The side-tip
technique, where the tip of the brush travels along one side of the stroke (Figure
4.2), produces elegant yet delicate lines. The center-tip and side-tip methods are
used as the need arises. Good writing with strength is produced using mainly
center-tip strokes, supplemented by side-tip strokes.
b r u s h t e c h n i q u e s a n d b a s i c s t ro ke s i i
51
BrUsH teCHniQUes (3):
reveaLeD tiP versUs ConCeaLeD tiP
The revealed-tip (露鋒 lòufēng) and concealed-tip (藏鋒 cáng fēng) techniques are
different ways to produce the first and last touches of a stroke. In Chinese cal-
ligraphy, one can choose to show or hide the first and last touches of a stroke for
a deliberate display or understatement of the power of the brush. So far, this book
has shown how to start horizontal and vertical lines with revealed tips because
the method is simpler. Using concealed tips, an advanced method, adds more
strength to a stroke. Therefore concealed tips are used very often, especially for a
character’s primary strokes.
As seen in Figure 4.3, to conceal the tip of the brush at the beginning of a
stroke, the bristles are contracted slightly, in the opposite direction of the stroke.
Figure 4.2. side tip.
Figure 4.1. Center tip.
c h i n e s e w r i t i n g a n d c a l l i g r a p hy
52
Figure 4.3. Concealed tip.
To conceal the tip at the end of a stroke, the brush is brought back again before it
is lifted off the paper, ever so slightly, in the direction opposite to the stroke. In
Figure 4.3, the contractions added at the beginning are (1) to (2); those at the end
are (5) to (6) for a horizontal line and (4) to (5) for a vertical line.
To understand the function of the concealed tip, apply one of the basic prin-
ciples of physics to calligraphy: for every action there must be a reaction. You
crouch down before jumping up; a hammer is lifted up before it falls onto a nail;
a leg is swung back before it kicks out and connects with a ball. Similarly, for a
horizontal line to be written with strength (from left to right), the brush must
move left before it goes right.
The same principle applies to other stroke types. In classical literature on Chi-
nese calligraphy, the concealed tip at the end of a horizontal line is likened to rid-
ing a galloping horse toward a canyon and halting abruptly at the cliff ’s very edge.
In writing, such a technique enables the power of the brush to be kept within the
stroke. A good stroke with concealed tips, written with the f low of energy from
the writer’s body to the brush tip, increases the sturdiness of the line and gives it
a restrained inner strength.
The concealed-tip technique ref lects a profound principle in Chinese aes-
thetics and philosophy. Starting with Confucius, modesty and moderation have
been considered primary Chinese virtues. A refined person is one who withholds
strength by concealing his or her cutting edge. This is well captured in the say-
ing bú-lù-fēng-máng 不露锋芒, literally “not revealing cutting edge.” This saying
describes a refined, able person who has inner strength but at the same time is
modest and discreet.
stroKe tyPe 4: tHe DoWn-Left sLant
The down-left slant is characterized by a wide top and a pointed ending. In Fig-
ure 4.4, (1) shows a revealed tip at the beginning; (2) indicates, with the trace of
b r u s h t e c h n i q u e s a n d b a s i c s t ro ke s i i
53
brush, that the stroke should be written with a center tip; and (3) is written using
the concealed-tip method. Follow these steps to write a down-left slant with a
concealed tip (also see page 205 in Appendix 1).
1. At (1), the tip of the brush touches the paper slightly and
moves upward to (2).
2. At (2), press down at a 45-degree angle and pause.
3. Start moving the brush downward and leftward to (3).
4. When approaching (4), gradually lift the brush to make a
pointed ending.
Examples of the down-left slant in characters appear in Figure 4.5.
VARIATIONS
The down-left stroke may vary in length, the angle of slanting, and the speed of
writing. Compared to the down-left slants in Figures 4.5, those in Figure 4.6 are
shorter in length.
Figure 4.4. the down-left slant.
Figure 4.5. examples of the down-left slant in characters.
(1) (2) (3)
c h i n e s e w r i t i n g a n d c a l l i g r a p hy
54
In traditional Chinese calligraphy treatises, a short down-left stroke is de-
scribed as having been written with force and at a fast speed, like a bird pecking
at grain. A long down-left stroke, by contrast, is made slowly, with ease, like a
woman combing her long hair all the way to the end.
stroKe tyPe 5: tHe DoWn-riGHt sLant
The down-right slant is characterized not only by the direction of writing, but
also by the “foot” at the end of the stroke, shown from (3) to (4) in Figure 4.7.
The procedure for writing the down-right slant is as follows (also see pages
206–207 in Appendix 1).
1. Start lightly at (1), moving down and right toward (2) and
gradually putting more pressure on the brush.
2. Press down hard at (3) and pause slightly.
3. Change the direction of the brush, now moving right-
ward toward (4) and gradually lifting the brush.
4. Make a pointed ending at (4).
Examples of the down-right slant in characters appear in Figure 4.8.
Figure 4.7. the down-right slant.
Figure 4.6. variations of the down-left slant.
b r u s h t e c h n i q u e s a n d b a s i c s t ro ke s i i
55
VARIATIONS
In Figure 4.8, each down-right slant stroke is paired with a down-left slant, like
two legs on which the character stands. The down-right slant may also be written
more horizontally at the bottom of a character as in Figure 4.9.
stroKe tyPe 6: tHe riGHt-UP tiCK
The right-up tick is a distinct stroke that starts from the lower left corner and
slants up to the right.
The stroke is usually made quickly, with strength, in the following way (also
see page 207 in Appendix 1).
1. At (1), press down (with either a revealed or a concealed tip)
and pause.
2. Start moving upward to the right (2), gradually lifting the
brush.
3. Make a sharp ending at (3).
Figure 4.8. examples of the down-right slant in characters.
Figure 4.9. variations of the down-right slant.
c h i n e s e w r i t i n g a n d c a l l i g r a p hy
56
Figure 4.11 shows examples of the right-up tick in characters. Note the slight
variations in the direction of writing.
We have looked at six stroke types so far, with two more to go. You will need
lots of writing practice before moving on! For now we will switch to a cultural
topic relevant to the signature of a calligraphy piece: Chinese names. We will dis-
cuss the structure and components of Chinese names and how Chinese names are
given based on Western names.
CHinese CULtUre (1): CHinese naMes
To a learner of the Chinese language or of calligraphy, Chinese names are inter-
esting because they say a great deal about the language, Chinese culture, Chinese
society, and change over time. When appreciating and producing a calligraphy
piece, the signature carries much weight. Chinese names are discussed early in this
book so that you will have time to obtain a Chinese name (or choose your own),
to learn as much as you can about it as we discuss various aspects of Chinese writ-
ing, and to practice writing it with a brush. Your Chinese name will be a personal
link to the Chinese language and culture.1
Chinese names are most different from Western names in that the family name
(surname) goes first, before the personal (given) name. Thus, “John Smith” as a
Chinese name would be “Smith John.” An old tradition places a generational name
in the middle: family name + generational name + personal name.
Figure 4.10. the right-up tick.
Figure 4.11. examples of the right-up tick in characters.
b r u s h t e c h n i q u e s a n d b a s i c s t ro ke s i i
57
Interestingly, this order follows the typical Chinese perceptual pattern moving
from the most general to the most specific, which can also be seen in the way time
and location are recorded. Usually each of the three parts in a Chinese name is ex-
pressed in one character. In writing no space is left between characters. In speech,
because one character is always pronounced as one syllable, a name with three
characters is pronounced as three syllables. When Chinese names are romanized and
written in English, the family name always appears separately although the other
two syllables may be written together (e.g., Mao Zedong) or linked by a hyphen
(e.g., Mao Ze-dong). In a Chinese name with two parts—one with a single syllable
and the other with two syllables—the part with a single syllable is almost always the
surname. A two-character surname with a single-character personal name, while
possible, is very rare.
In old China, the traditional social structure offered low mobility; large families
usually lived together, sometimes with as many as four generations. Close relatives
also lived near each other, often in the same village. By using generational names,
family members of the same generation would share both the family name and the
generational name. Thus they could be identified no matter how far apart they
lived or how vast their age differences. For example, Mao Zedong had two brothers
named Mao Zemin and Mao Zetan. They share the generational name Ze, “benefi-
cence.” Mao Zedong’s sons (Mao Yuanren, Mao Yuanyi, Mao Yuanzhi) and neph-
ews (Mao Yuanxin, Mao Yuanda) share the generational name Yuan, “far distance.”
Generational names were very important for a society dominated by Confucianism
in which social order and status were of utmost significance.
In modern China, with the breakdown of the traditional family structure and
lifestyle, and with rapid social changes and increases in geographic mobility, genera-
tional names have lost their function and are no longer commonly used. People may
have a two-character given name, still resulting in a full name of three characters or
syllables, or a one-character given name, which yields a full name with only two
characters or syllables. Full names with only two characters have disadvantages, es-
pecially when the family name is a popular one. With China’s large population and
the popularity of certain last names, the chance of exact duplication is very high.
If these people come to the West and romanize their names, it is often difficult to
tell which is the surname and which is the given name because both have only one
syllable.
SURNAMES
Although statistics show about three thousand surnames in use by the Han Chinese
nowadays, the distribution of these surnames is very much skewed. About 40 per-
cent of the 1.3 billion Chinese use ten major surnames (Zhang 張, Wang 王, Li 李,
Zhao 趙, Chen 陳, Yang 楊, Wu 吳, Liu 劉, Huang 黃, and Zhou 周).2 Among
c h i n e s e w r i t i n g a n d c a l l i g r a p hy
58
these, Li 李, Wang 王, and Zhang 張 are the most common, used by about 250 mil-
lion people. According to the latest statistics, within mainland China, people with
just the surname Zhang 張 number more than 100 million, almost the combined
populations of Britain and France.
Given the popularity of major Chinese surnames, it is easy to understand that
variety depends mainly on given names. This contrasts with names in English, in
which given names are common and surnames are more distinctive. An interest-
ing consequence of this difference is that people in the West are often introduced
informally by their given names (such as John or Jennifer). However, in China or
among Chinese people, Mr. or Ms. plus the surname (Zhang or Li, for example)
are used for people you don’t know well. Chinese immigrants to the West also mix
their names by choosing an English given name followed by their Chinese family
name. This, also results in common names in Chinese communities, such as David
Zhang or Mary Wang. In some cases, the original Chinese given name is kept as a
middle name to make the name more distinctive.
GIVEN NAMES
It is said that the way of the pine is not the way of the willow. In Chinese, as in
Native American languages, gender in personal names is often indicated by choos-
ing words such as “pine” for males and “willow” for females. Characters identify-
ing traditional Chinese virtues or symbolizing moral imperatives may also be used.
Male names often represent a hoped for destiny or character trait, such as modesty
or wisdom, or they are linked with strength and firmness. Female names tend to be
more poetic but with less profound significance, linked with flowers, lotus, precious
jade, or beauty, reflecting the traditional status of women in Chinese society. Table
4.1 explains how characters in a given name are chosen.
Names in the “neutral” column can be used for men or women, while those
in the other columns are more gender-specific. It is a common practice for siblings
to share a character in their given names. For example, a brother may be named
春松, “spring pine,” and his two sisters may be called 春柳, “spring willow,” and
春梅, “spring plum.” In this case, the first character is gender-neutral and the sec-
ond characters are gender-specific. Alternatively, both characters in a given name
could be gender-specific (for example, 國强, “country strong,” for a male and 美玉,
“beautiful jade,” for a female), or both names could be gender-neutral (such as 春華,
“spring magnificent,” for either a male or a female person). These are only examples
of the most popular characters used in traditional names. Modern people, especially
the urban intelligentsia, often make their children’s names more unique by selecting
less commonly used characters.
If you want to choose your own Chinese name and you do not know much
about the Chinese language, make sure to check with a Chinese person because
b r u s h t e c h n i q u e s a n d b a s i c s t ro ke s i i
59
Chinese names offer more complications. For example, a name does not sound good
if all three characters start with the same (or very similar) initial consonants, which
is acceptable in English. A name should not sound similar to a phrase with negative
meaning or to a brand name. For example, 黃蓮素 Huáng Liánsù would be a fine
name except that it sounds the same as a well-known brand of Chinese medicine
for diarrhea. The characters in a name should also go together to denote a plausible
meaning. This can be tricky because when two characters are put together, the
meaning is often different from the cumulative meaning of the two individual char-
acters. For example, 美金 does not mean “beautiful gold” but rather “U.S. dollars.”
No standard convention exists for choosing a Chinese name for a person in
the West. The most common practice is to find Chinese characters that match the
sounds of the person’s Western name (surname or given name, or both) as closely
as possible. Because surnames are distinctive in the West, figures of historical sig-
nificance are commonly referred to by transliteration of their surnames. For exam-
ple, 馬克思 Mǎ-kè-sī for Karl Marx, 林肯 Lín-kěn for Abraham Lincoln, 羅斯福
Luó-sī-fú for Franklin Roosevelt, 愛因斯坦 Ài-yīn-sī-tǎn for Albert Einstein, and
Neutral male female
春 spring 松 pine 柳 willow
華 magnificent 仁 benevolence 梅 plum
英 outstanding 忠 fidelity 花 flower
荣 prosper 德 virtue 玉 jade
明 bright 志 aspiration 珍 treasure
文 elegant 智 intelligence 秀 pretty
君 gentle 國 country 芳 fragrance
云 cloud 軍 military 鳳 phoenix
星 star 强 strong 麗 pretty
金 gold 偉 grandeur 美 beautiful
曉 early morning 富 wealth 蓮 lotus
敏 smart 義 righteousness 香 fragrance
Table 4.1. Commonly Used Characters in Chinese Given names
c h i n e s e w r i t i n g a n d c a l l i g r a p hy
60
莎士比亞 Shā-shì-bī-yà for William Shakespeare. You may notice that the Chinese
transliterations often have more syllables than their Western counterparts. This is
because Chinese syllables mostly consist of a consonant followed by a vowel.3 No
consonant clusters are allowed. Therefore, in transliteration, a vowel is often inserted
between two consonants in Western names to make them into separate syllables.
Informal common practice exists for the transliteration of popular Western first
names, such as 麗莎 Lì-shā for Lisa, 珍妮 Zhēn-ní for Jenny, and 湯姆 Tāng-mǔ
for Tom. These names have no meaning attached; they are simply gender-specific,
nice-sounding transliterations of Western names. It is ideal if the meaning of the
characters also works together to yield a typical Chinese name, such as 大偉 Dà-
wěi (meaning “big-grandeur”) for David.
Since Western names often have three parts, a common practice is to use the
first syllable of each part to make up the Chinese name. An example is 費正清 Fèi-
zhèng-qīng for John King Fairbank, who was a professor and historian at Harvard
and founder of the university’s Asia Center. Fèi, a Chinese surname, is based on the
first syllable of his Western last name. Zhèng, for John, means “upright,” and qīng, for
King, means “pure.” Sometimes transliteration of the surname alone yields a good
Chinese name. For example, 衛奕信 Wèi-yì-xìn is based on the last name of David
Clive Wilson, British diplomat and former governor of Hong Kong. Wèi, a Chinese
surname, is followed by yì, “bright,” and xìn, “trust.” Both of these are excellent
Chinese names based on Western names.
DisCUssion QUestions anD WritinG PraCtiCe
1. What are the center-tip and side-tip techniques? Write two horizontal lines,
one with center tip and the other with side tip, to see how they differ. Then do
the same with two vertical lines.
2. Practice writing the strokes with concealed tips on page 201 in Appendix 1.
Then compare and discuss how they differ from the strokes written with revealed
tips.
3. Without looking at the book, verbalize the procedures for writing a down-
left slant, a down-right slant, and a right-up tick.
4. Practice the strokes types and their variations on pp. 205–207 in Appendix 1.
5. Practice writing the model characters on pp. 208–210 in Appendix 1. When
copying, focus on one stroke at a time. Examine its shape, size, where it starts, and
where it ends, and then duplicate that in your writing square before moving on to
the next stroke. Note also the space you should have around each character.
61
c h a p t e r f ive
Basic strokes iii
and stroke order
Chapters 3 and 4 have described six stroke types. All of these are considered simple
strokes because each stroke is written with brush movement basically in a single
direction (setting aside the concealed tips). This chapter first examines the remain-
ing two stroke types, the turn and the hook. These are “combined strokes” because
they contain a change in the direction of brush movement. Then writing at the
beginning level is reviewed, with precautions concerning common pitfalls in writ-
ing and advice on how to avoid them. General rules of stroke order are laid out in
the last section.
stroKe tyPe 7: tHe tUrn
Simply put, the turn is a combination of two strokes with a turn at the joint. The
strokes that are combined can be different, resulting in different turns. Here we start
with a turn that combines a horizontal line and a vertical line (Figure 5.1); other
combinations will be described as variations in the next section.
Follow the steps below when writing the typical turn (also see page 211 in Ap-
pendix 1). You will see that steps 1 through 3 are the same as those for writing a
horizontal line.
c h i n e s e w r i t i n g a n d c a l l i g r a p hy
62
1. Starting from (1), press down and move to the right to-
ward (2).
2. At (3), lift the brush slightly to bring the tip to the highest
point of the stroke.
3. Press down at a 45-degree angle so that the bottom of the
brush reaches (4); then pause. This is done to make the thick
turning point. Be sure that the brush tip remains at (3).
4. Start moving down toward (5) and end the stroke.
Steps 2 and 3 are crucial for making the turn. This procedure is similar to driv-
ing in that one must apply the brakes before making a turn. In calligraphy, however,
simply slowing down is not enough. You have to lift the brush to adjust the tip and
then press down with a brief pause to make the shape at the turn before moving in
the new direction. The combination is considered one stroke because there is no
intentional stop at the turn, and the brush is not lifted completely off the paper.
Shown in Figure 5.2 are some examples of the typical turn in characters.
VARIATIONS
Different strokes can be joined to make different types of turns. In addition to the
above example, a horizontal line can also be combined with a down-left slant, and
a down-left slant can be combined with a right-up tick. The writing techniques
involved are very similar, as illustrated in the examples in Figure 5.3.
stroKe tyPe 8: tHe HooK
The hook is a combined stroke because it is always attached at the end of another
stroke, such as a vertical or horizontal line. Like turns, hooks involve more writing
technique and have more variant forms than a simple stroke.
The most common type of hook is attached at the end of a vertical line and
usually flows to the left, as shown in Figures 5.4 and 5.5.
Figure 5.1. the turn
Figure 5.2. examples of the turn in characters.
Figure 5.3. variations of the turn with examples.
Figure 5.4. the hook.
Figure 5.5. examples of the hook in characters.
c h i n e s e w r i t i n g a n d c a l l i g r a p hy
64
A vertical line with a hook is a difficult stroke for beginners. Here is the proce-
dure for writing one (also see page 212 in Appendix 1).
1. At (1), press down and pause, as with a vertical line.
2. Start pulling the brush downward to the middle of the
stroke (2), keeping the brush tip on the center line of the stroke.
3. When approaching (3), press down slightly in a leftward
motion and pause at (3).
4. Move back slightly, and then make the hook to the left,
gradually lifting the brush to form the tapering end.
It will take some practice before you can do it right. If written correctly, the
hook will look like a goose head turned upside down.
VARIATIONS
Hooks can be attached to a number of strokes, although the method of making the
hooks is similar in each case. Note that the direction in which the hook is made may
vary according to the stroke to which it is attached (see Figure 5.6).
From the examples in Figure 5.6 we can see that, although there are eight major
stroke types, their variations are numerous. Strokes can be further combined. For
example, the character 乙 yı̌, “second (of the Heavenly Stems),” combines a hori-
zontal line with a down-left slant and then, after the curve, with a hook at the end.
In actual writing, you will encounter strokes you have never practiced before. At
such times you need to use your skills creatively. When basic techniques are intact,
creativity can take flight.
Figure 5.6. variations of the hook with examples.
b r u s h s t ro ke s i i i a n d s t ro ke o rd e r
65
sUMMary of MaJor stroKe tyPes
Simple strokes can be divided into two types: straight lines and slightly curved lines.
The former include horizontal lines and vertical lines. Although they are straight,
they should not look stiff. Slightly curved lines include the down-left stoke, the
down-right, and, surprisingly, the dot. These strokes should not be straight but
should be made with a slight natural curve. Often strokes with a hook attached are
also written with a slight bend, as shown in Figure 5.6. Note also that the part of a
stroke that curves is always thinner, while the end of a stroke where the hook is at-
tached is thick, an effect produced by pressing down with the brush. Make sure that
you attend to such details. If you can produce such minute differences, your strokes
will look much better.
Horizontal and vertical lines can vary in relative length or thickness. These
variations are determined by the position of a particular stroke in a character. For
example, the first horizontal line in 天 tiān, “day/sky,” has to be shorter than the
second horizontal line. By comparison, variations in curved lines may be in the
direction of a stroke and the degree of the curve. The down-left stroke in 人 rén,
“person,” for example, is different from the down-left stroke in 月 yuè, “month/
moon.” The former is a more simple down-left stroke, while the latter starts with a
vertical line and then changes into a down-left stroke with more of a curve. Learn-
ers should note two important points here. One is that such details should not be
overlooked in writing. The other is that strokes of the same type may look different
in different characters or even in different parts of the same character. Versatility of
strokes is important in the art of Chinese calligraphy.
There is one Chinese character that uses all of the eight major strokes and only
those eight. This is the character 永 yǒng, meaning “eternity” (Figure 5.7). For this
reason, the study of stroke types and how they are written is called “the eight meth-
Figure 5.7. the character yǒng, “eternity.”
c h i n e s e w r i t i n g a n d c a l l i g r a p hy
66
ods of yǒng.” In China, students of calligraphy always spend years practicing the eight
stroke types. It is said that, as a young student, Wang Xizhi, the calligraphy sage of
the Jin dynasty, spent fifteen years on the eight methods of yǒng to build a firm grasp
of stroke techniques.
The analysis of stroke types has changed over the long history of Chinese callig-
raphy. For example, the second stroke in Figure 5.7 has a turn that joins a horizontal
stroke and a vertical stroke. However, the turn did not receive much attention in
ancient times; it was not even mentioned in calligraphy treatises on the eight-stroke
method until the Tang dynasty, when the Regular Script was fully developed. In-
stead, the short down-left slant on the upper right side of the vertical line and the
long down-left slant on the lower left side were once seen as two different stroke
types. Thus the total number of stroke types has remained eight.
sUGGestions for BeGinners to
avoiD CoMMon PitfaLLs
Feeling nervous at the beginning is natural. If you are nervous, you may hold the
brush incorrectly. As a result, the hand may shake and your writing may be affected.
If this happens to you, relax and make sure you are not holding the brush too tight.
To help stabilize your writing hand, you may use your free hand as a cushion by
putting it under the wrist of your writing hand.
Brush writing is like driving in that the calligrapher, like the driver, should
always be in total control. The beginning and ending of strokes are particularly
crucial points because they show the quality of strokes and features of the writing
style. They should never be taken lightly. Make sure you have a clear plan in your
mind for how to write them, and the way your strokes are written should clearly
show your intention. In other words, no stroke should be written at random. This
is especially important for beginners.
A common beginner mistake is to use the brush like a hard pen, drawing lines
without motions of pressing and lifting. Do not drag the brush when writing a stroke,
because brush writing involves constant changes in the amount of pressure applied to
the brush through pressing and lifting, although the changes may be very slight. When
studying model characters, pay special attention to the way the pressure of the brush
alters from one point to the next, and try to imitate that without overdoing it.
Some beginners write characters all of which tilt in the same way and to the
same degree. This is most likely a consequence of their English writing habits. Un-
fortunately, although such a look may be acceptable and even desirable for other
scripts, it is considered a pitfall in Chinese brush writing. Every effort should be
made to correct this tendency. Sit up when writing and put the writing sheet right
in front of you, without turning it sideways. Pay special attention to your vertical
lines. They should go straight down with no sideways tilt.
b r u s h s t ro ke s i i i a n d s t ro ke o rd e r
67
Table 5.1 shows some common errors in writing brush strokes. Remedies are
recommended.
Note the following additional points:
• Do not make indecisive strokes. Before putting your brush
down on the paper, have a good idea of what you are going
to write; know the shape, size, and position of each stroke
within an imagined square; and know how you are going
to start, continue, and finish the writing. Once you start a
stroke, do not stop in the middle to glance at your model.
Even if you slow down, the ink in the brush will keep f low-
ing out of the brush and onto the absorbent paper. Your line
will begin to spread out in blotches, destroying the momen-
tum of the stroke.
• Readjust and recharge your brush frequently.
• A stroke is executed by a single effort, whether it turns out
to be good or bad. Touching it up afterwards would destroy
its life.
• The ability to develop your own style and to do it well de-
pends on good early training and unremitting practice. Prac-
tice with patience. Write slowly and pay attention to every
detail in every part of each stroke and character. Repeat not
for the sake of repetition but for improvement. Every time
you write there should be a process of studying, learning,
and improvement until your writing becomes satisfactory.
stroKe orDer
We know that Chinese characters are constructed from strokes. The number of
strokes in a character varies from the most simple 一 yī, “one,” written with only one
stroke, to the most complex, tiè or “verbose,” shown in Figure 5.8, which is a combi-
nation of four 龍 lóng (dragon) characters and has as many as sixty-four strokes.
Figure 5.8. the number of strokes in characters.
erroNeouS StrokeS Problem aND exPlaNatioN remeDy
In the Regular Script, no
stroke should start or finish
with split endings.
(1) Start the
stroke with a
straightened
brush.
(2) Slow
down at the
end to make
a pointed
ending.
In the Regular Script, no
streaks are supposed to be
seen within strokes.
Load the
brush with
more ink
and reduce
the speed of
writing.
The beginning and ending
of these horizontal lines
were not created with proper
pressing down of the brush.
Rather, the brush was used
like a hard pen to trace or
paint the thicker endings of
the strokes.
Press down
properly at
both ends
without
tracing the
outline.
The transition between the
two ends and the middle part
of the stroke is not smooth.
The change
in pressure
on the brush
should
be more
gradual.
The center part of the stroke
is too thin. The brush is
brought up too much.
Apply more
pressure in
the middle
of the stroke.
The brush is held at an angle.
An angled brush typically
produces asymmetrical lines
that are straight on one side
and rough on the other, like
a saw.
Make the
brush more
vertical
and use the
center-tip
technique.
Table 5.1. Common errors in stroke Writing
b r u s h s t ro ke s i i i a n d s t ro ke o rd e r
69
The number of strokes in a character is a practical matter directly related to writ-
ing speed. There is no doubt that characters as complex as tiè take too much time
to write. In fact, characters with more than thirty strokes are rarely used in modern
Chinese. They are mostly ancient characters that appear in dictionaries only for the
study of classical Chinese.
Ideally, the fewer strokes a character has, the better. However, since the number
of frequently used characters (for newspaper reading, for example) is about three
thousand, and since each character has to be distinct enough for visual decoding,
they cannot all be simple. In modern Chinese, the majority of characters in use
contain fewer than twenty-five strokes. According to statistics, the top two thousand
most frequently used characters in their traditional form have an average of 11.2
strokes. This number was brought down to 9.8 through a simplification campaign
in the mid-twentieth century.1 If we divide frequently used characters according to
stroke count, the groups with the largest number of characters are those with nine
to eleven strokes. There are only two characters with one stroke, 一 yı̌, “one,” and
乙 yı̌, “second (of the Heavenly Stems).”
If a character has a number of strokes that crisscross each other, how does a cal-
ligrapher know where to start, how to proceed, and where to end? With sufficient
knowledge of strokes, this question is not difficult to answer: the characters are writ-
ten following a prescribed sequence, stroke by stroke. The sequence of strokes is
governed by a number of general rules, as shown in Table 5.2. Following these rules,
each character has a prescribed, fixed stroke order. The first two rules are the most
basic: from top to bottom and from left to right. For characters with multiple compo-
nents, each component as a unit is also written according to these rules. For example,
the character 的 (a noun modifier marker) has two components in a left to right ar-
rangement. The part on the left is written first, following stroke order rule 2.
Students of the Chinese language often ask why characters must be written in
such an exact, specific stroke order. This question can be answered with reference
to brush writing.
Because the stroke order rules are the result of many years of collective writing
experience and study of character structure, they represent the most efficient way of
writing. They also help the calligrapher to locate each character’s center of gravity as
early as possible during writing so that other strokes and components can be added
with respect for internal balance. Take the character 水 shuı̌, “water,” for example:
as soon as the first stroke is put down (the vertical line with a hook that forms the
middle of the character), we know how tall and how wide the character is meant
to be, and where the center of the character is. This gives us an idea of where the
strokes on the left and right should start, and how far apart they should be—and all
of this is indicated by the central vertical line.
The prescribed stroke order also facilitates accelerated writing. When a rapid
hand produces linked strokes, the characters will remain legible only when the same
c h i n e s e w r i t i n g a n d c a l l i g r a p hy
70
characters are written following the same conventionalized stroke order and the
strokes are linked in the same way. This is illustrated in Table 5.3, which compares
the same characters written in Regular Script and Running Style. If the characters
are written with an incorrect stroke order in the Running Style, the strokes will be
linked differently, resulting in undecipherable characters.
In speedy writing, even when the strokes are not linked by solid lines, they still
correspond to each other; a previous stroke points in the direction of the following
stroke or vice versa. The two dots at the bottom of 只 zhı̌, “only,” are a good ex-
ample. There is a relationship between the two dots that gives the whole character
a unified look.
The stroke order rules also point to an essential difference between calligraphy
and other forms of visual art for which there is no fixed order of production. Not
only does the writing of each stroke in Chinese calligraphy proceed from a fixed
beginning point to a fixed end point, but strokes in characters are sequenced. The
stroke order also represents a flow of energy during writing. In the process of writ-
ing, an experienced calligrapher uses energy that originates from the lower abdo-
men (丹田 dāntián) and travels through the arm and fingers and ultimately, by way of
the brush, onto the paper. The energy is rendered visible by the linear route of the
ink. The stroke order, surprisingly, is followed not only in calligraphic production,
but also in a serious reader’s appreciation when he or she retraces the flow of energy
Stroke orDer rule examPleS
1 Top to bottom
2 Left to right
3 Horizontal before vertical
4 Central vertical before shorter
symmetric strokes on two sides
5 Outline before content
6 Content before closure of outline
Table 5.2. stroke order rules
b r u s h s t ro ke s i i i a n d s t ro ke o rd e r
71
while enjoying the quality of writing. It is believed that the energy emanating from
the paper may even be absorbed by viewers and thus energize their bodies.
For beginners, the best way to learn correct stroke order is to gain a general
understanding of the stroke order rules and then to practice writing characters until
they become second nature. After your hand becomes accustomed to the repeated
patterns, a stroke written out of order feels wrong. To help you learn the exact stroke
order of every character, in this book all of the model brush-written characters in
Regular Script are marked to indicate the proper stroke order.
The general rules listed in Table 5.3 apply to the majority of characters in
Regular Script. Exceptions do exist, especially when writing in faster modes such
as the Running and Cursive styles.
DisCUssion QUestions anD WritinG PraCtiCe
1. Without looking at the book, verbalize the procedures for writing a typical
turn and a hook.
2. Name the six general stroke order rules, and provide two examples for
each of them.
3. Why is stroke order necessary?
4. Practice the stroke types and variations on pp. 211–212 in Appendix 1.
5. Practice character writing on pp. 213–214 in Appendix 1.
6. Prepare to write your Chinese name. If you have a Chinese name already,
Table 5.3. stroke order and the speed of Writing
c h i n e s e w r i t i n g a n d c a l l i g r a p hy
72
make sure you know how it is written, the meaning of each character, and how
it is pronounced.
If you do not have a Chinese name yet, there are some websites that will gen-
erate a Chinese name after you key in your English name. However, since this is
done by a computer based purely on the sound of your English name, it is a good
idea to check with a Chinese person to make sure it is indeed a good name.
7. Find out the stroke order of your Chinese name, and practice it using a
hard pen first and then a brush.
73
c h a p t e r s i x
the formation of
Chinese Characters
The distinct look of Chinese written signs has given rise to misconceptions, one
being that Chinese is a pictographic script and that each symbol in Chinese writ-
ing is a picture of something. Even college students may fall into this trap. “How
do you draw this character?” they ask, reluctant to use the word “write.”1 Appar-
ently, this misunderstanding arises because Chinese is not alphabetic. The written
symbols do not directly relate to sounds. Rather, they are meaning symbols that
sometimes have a connection with the shape of objects.
In this chapter, we take a close look at Chinese written signs by examining
their formation, their components, and the function of different types of compo-
nents. We start the discussion by comparing Chinese with alphabetic languages
such as English.
tHe natUre of CHinese Written siGns
In the Western world, since Phoenician businessmen taught their method of writ-
ing to customers around the Mediterranean more than three thousand years ago,
writing systems have been alphabetic—representing sounds of speech. Previously,
c h i n e s e w r i t i n g a n d c a l l i g r a p hy
74
however, writing throughout the world was no different from Chinese. Every-
where, written expression was logographic—symbols represented words rather
than sounds. Many logographic language symbols, especially in early writing,
were pictographic (they resembled the physical appearance of the objects they
represented). This was true for all ancient languages, including cuneiform (used
in ancient Sumer, Assyria, and Babylonia), hieroglyphics (Egypt), and Chinese
(China). A check on the origin of the English alphabet shows that the twenty-six
letters evolved (with intermediate steps) from proto-Phoenician “pictographic”
symbols. The letter “A,” for example, began as the image of an ox’s head turned
sideways: ≮. Now, however, the letter “A” and all the other symbols in the alpha-
bet are sound symbols. Keep in mind that no language, even ancient languages,
can be completely pictographic, because once a language system is in use, there
have to be symbols that represent abstract ideas and indicate grammatical relations
between words. Those symbols cannot be pictographic.
What distinguishes Chinese from the rest of the world’s ancient logographic
languages is that Chinese logographic writing was not abandoned in favor of al-
phabetic writing. Instead, Chinese writing has remained logographic up to the
present day. This is not to say that Chinese has not changed; in fact, although the
writing system has never taken the revolutionary step of adopting an alphabetic
scheme, primitive pictographs and logographs have gradually been refined and
stylized into an intricate and highly sophisticated system.
The question of why Chinese has never adopted an alphabetic scheme would
take an entire book to answer. What can be brief ly mentioned here is that, geo-
graphically, China is very much isolated from the rest of the world by oceans to
its east and mountains and deserts in the west. This separation was accompanied
by the development of a high culture, early in Chinese history, that greatly inf lu-
enced its surrounding areas. Chinese customs and Chinese characters in writing
were adopted by many of its neighbors. But until the nineteenth century, only
one major foreign inf luence had a broad impact on China: Buddhism, from India.
Even so the Chinese writing system has never been affected. Having developed in
a geographic vacuum and resisted foreign inf luences, the Chinese writing system
remained purely indigenous by keeping its logographic nature.
Thus not only has the Chinese language been in continuous use for several
millennia, Chinese written symbols still bear traces of their origins. A person
today with only partial knowledge of classical Chinese grammar can still read
classical literature written two thousand years ago. For English readers, whose
language consists of words with origins in Anglo-Saxon, Norman French, Latin,
and Greek, and who cannot read English texts written as recently as seven hun-
dred years ago, the unbroken chain of an ancient written language elicits wonder
and fascination.
Given that Chinese writing does not show pronunciation directly, how, then,
f o r m a t i o n o f c h i n e s e c h a r a c t e r s
75
are the writing symbols constructed? As stated earlier, the number of characters
even for the most basic functions goes to thousands. These characters, however, are
not a collection of unrelated arbitrary symbols. Analyses of characters since ancient
times have indicated several major methods by which characters were formed.
This work was first done in the Han dynasty (206 BCE–220 CE) by a philolo-
gist named Xǔ Shèn 許慎 in a book titled Shuō wén jiě zì 說文解字, or Analysis of
Characters. Xu Shen divided all characters used in his day into two broad catego-
ries: single-component characters (such as 木 mù, “tree”) and multiple-component
characters (such as 林 lín, “woods,” which combines two “tree” symbols into one
character). Single-component characters are called 文 wén and multiple-compo-
nent characters 字 zì. Hence, the literal translation of the title of Xu Shen’s book
is “speaking of wen and explanation of zi.” Six categories of characters were iden-
tified that ref lect major principles of character formation and use. The book lists
9,353 characters plus 1,163 variant forms. It is believed to be the most comprehen-
sive study of characters in use during that time.
Since the Han dynasty, the Chinese writing system has not changed much
overall, nor have there been changes in the principal methods of character forma-
tion, although the number of characters in use grew to about 47,000 in the Qing
dynasty (1644–1911) and is well over 60,000 today. For more than 1,900 years, Xu
Shen’s analysis in terms of six classes has remained an inf luential categorization
method of Chinese characters, although alternative etymology theories have also
been proposed.
CateGories of CHaraCters
Within Xu Shen’s six classes, four (classes 1, 2, 3, and 5) have to do with the for-
mation of characters. The other two regard character use. The sixth class, known
as 轉注 zhuǎnzhù or “semantic transfer,” will not be looked at in detail here be-
cause it involves disagreement among scholars, and examples are scarce. For people
without knowledge of Chinese writing, the etymology of the examples for each
category is quite interesting. They make useful mnemonic devices for learning
some characters.
PICTOGRAPHS
Many early written signs in Chinese originated from sketches of objects. Thus
they bore a physical resemblance to the objects they represented, like pictures,
which is why they are called pictographs. Typical pictographs are illustrated in
Figure 6.1.
Apparently, the written signs in Figure 6.1 were invented to represent physical
objects in the world, and gradually they evolved from the original pictographic
c h i n e s e w r i t i n g a n d c a l l i g r a p hy
76
symbols into their modern forms by a process of simplification and abstraction,
during which details were left out and curves were changed into straight lines.
As a result, modern characters are far removed from their original pictures, al-
though they sometimes still show traces of the objects they represent. Although
these are the most frequently used examples of pictographic characters, modern
people without any knowledge of Chinese characters, when seeing these sym-
bols, would make no connection to their referents before the similarities were
explained. The character 日 rì, “sun,” for example, looks more like a window,
while the character 月 yuè, “moon,” resembles a stepladder. Generally speaking,
without knowing the meaning of these characters, one cannot decode them by
merely looking.
Although pictographic characters are the best known type among people who
are not very familiar with Chinese written signs, their number is much smaller
than one might think. Even in the earliest writing we know of, the Shell and Bone
Script (ca. 1400–ca. 1200 BCE), pictographic signs were a small portion of char-
acters, about 23 percent. Even then the majority of written symbols did not depict
physical shapes of objects. The decline of pictographic signs was well under way by
the Han dynasty. When Xu Shen did his study based on Small Seal characters (see
Chapter 8), pictographic signs comprised only 4 percent of all Chinese characters.2
Picture Evolution Modern character English
figure 6.1. the evolution of pictographic characters.
f o r m a t i o n o f c h i n e s e c h a r a c t e r s
77
In modern Chinese, even fewer characters show their pictographic origin clearly.
A more common function of these “pictographic” signs today is to indicate the
semantic category of a compound character (see below).
INDICATIVES
An indicative is a character made by adding strokes to another symbol in order to
indicate the new character’s meaning. For example,
刃 rèn, “blade.” A dot is added to 刀 dāo, “knife.”
旦 dàn, “morning.” A horizontal line is added underneath 日 rì,
“sun” to show the time when the sun is just above the horizon.
本 běn, “root.” A short line is added to 木 mù, “tree.”
SEMANTIC COMPOUNDS
Semantic compounds are constructed by combining two or more components
that collectively contribute to the meaning of the new character. Examples are
明 míng, “bright,” is a combination of 日 rì, “sun,” and 月
yuè, “moon.”
信 xìn, “trust,” combines 人 rén, “person,” and 言 yán,
“words.”
看 kàn, “look,” has 手 shǒu, “hand,” over 目 mù, “eye.”
林 lín, “woods,” shows two 木 mù, “tree.”
森 sēn, “forest,” is composed of three 木 mù, “tree.”
囚 qiú, “prison,” is represented by a 人 rén, “person,” in 囗,
“confinement.”3
The methods of character formation represented by pictographs, indicatives,
and semantic compounds are all iconic. They are limited in that new signs have
to be created for new words. As a result they could not meet the needs of a
fast-developing society and its increasing demand for new written signs. In ad-
dition, abstract ideas and grammatical terms (such as prepositions, conjunctions,
and pronouns) were impossible to represent with pictographic signs. The solu-
tion was to break away from iconic representation and to use existing written
signs to phonetically represent the sounds of new words. This process is called
“borrowing.”
c h i n e s e w r i t i n g a n d c a l l i g r a p hy
78
BORROWING
Borrowing in this context refers to the use of existing characters to represent ad-
ditional new meanings. Two frequently used examples are
來 lái, originally a pictograph for “wheat.” The written
character with its pronunciation was later borrowed to mean
“to come.” In time, the borrowed meaning prevailed, and the
original meaning of “wheat” died away.
去 qù, originally a pictograph for a cooking utensil. Later the
character was borrowed to mean “to go.” The borrowed mean-
ing also prevailed, and the original meaning died away.
In cases such as 來 lái and 去 qù, only the borrowed meaning has survived in
modern Chinese.
SEMANTIC-PHONETIC COMPOUNDS
Semantic-phonetic compounds are a hybrid category constructed by combining
a meaning element and a sound element. This method of character formation
thrived as a means to solve the ambiguity problem caused by borrowing. As can
be easily seen, when a particular character is borrowed to mean more and more
different things, sooner or later, the interpretation of the multiple-meaning writ-
ten sign becomes a problem. To solve the problem and to allow borrowing to
continue, a semantic element is added to indicate the specific meaning of the new
character. This process led to the creation of semantic-phonetic compounds.
Thus, a semantic-phonetic compound has two components, one indicating
meaning and the other pronunciation. Take 主 zhǔ, “host,” as an example. In
modern Chinese, the character is used as a phonetic element in more than ten
semantic-phonetic compounds, five of which are shown in Table 6.1. The five
characters in the first column are pronounced exactly the same way, zhù, although
they are different in meaning. They share the same phonetic element, 主 zhǔ,
which is the right-hand side of the characters. The signs on the left are semantic
components, which offer some clue to the meaning of the characters.
The semantic elements, for example, 亻, “person,” 氵, “water,” and 木, “tree,”
are pictographs commonly known as “radicals.” Their function is to hint at the
meaning of the characters in which they appear. At the same time, they also
group semantically related characters into classes. For example, all the characters
with 亻, “person,” as a component have to do, at least in theory, with a person or
people; all the characters with 木, “tree,” as a component have to do with wood
or trees. Traditionally, Chinese characters are categorized under 214 radicals.
f o r m a t i o n o f c h i n e s e c h a r a c t e r s
79
Table 6.1. semantic-Phonetic Compounds: zhù
CHARACTER SEMANTIC MEANING PHONETIC PRONUNCIATION
PART PART
住 亻person live 主 zhŭ zhù
注 氵water to pour (liquid) 主 zhŭ zhù
柱 木 tree pillar 主 zhŭ zhù
蛀 虫 insect
boring
(of insects)
主 zhŭ zhù
驻 马 horse halt, station 主 zhŭ zhù
One way to organize characters in dictionaries is to group them under these
radicals.
Table 6.2 brief ly illustrates the combination of semantic and phonetic elements
in the formation of characters. The vertical columns group characters by phonetic
elements, and the horizontal rows group characters by semantic elements. In other
words, characters in the same column have phonetic similarities and those in the
same row share semantic features. As seen in Table 6.2, the arrangement of the
two elements in a semantic-phonetic compound can be left to right or top to
bottom (as in 菁, 筒, and 苛). Other patterns not shown here include outside to
inside, as in the character 国 guó, “country.” Radicals may take any position in a
character.
In modern Chinese, the majority of characters in the writing system belong to
the category of semantic-phonetic compounds. From as early as the Han dynasty,
this became the most productive method for creating new characters. It is worth
noting, however, that there are problems with extensive reliance on semantic-
phonetic characters. Languages change over time, and Chinese is no exception.
Both the pronunciation and the meaning of characters are in a state of f lux. While
the written signs remain constant, over time sound change and semantic evolution
have eroded the relationships between characters and their sound and semantic
components, making it more and more difficult to deduce the meaning and pro-
nunciation of a character from its written form. Now, as can be partially seen in
Table 6.2, phonetic elements do not indicate the pronunciation of the characters
c h i n e s e w r i t i n g a n d c a l l i g r a p hy
80
clearly and accurately; nor do semantic elements show the exact meaning of char-
acters. In modern Chinese, the value of semantic-phonetic characters resides in
the combination of these two types of information to determine a character’s
meaning and pronunciation.
tHe CoMPLexity anD DeveLoPMentaL
seQUenCe of tHe CateGories
The five categories of characters described above represent three stages of de-
velopment in character formation. The first stage is represented by pictographs,
indicatives, and semantic compounds. At this stage, written signs were created
based on a physical resemblance of some sort. This process also corresponds to an
early mode of human cognition, perceiving the world through the senses. Of the
three categories, pictographs are the simplest; indicatives and semantic compounds
involve more complex and abstract concepts.
The second stage is phonetic borrowing. Initially, single-element characters
such as 主 zhǔ, “host” were borrowed to represent additional meanings. As the
multiple meanings of single characters became a source of enormous confusion,
主 ZHǓ 可 KĚ 青 QI
–
NG 同 TÓNG
亻
person
住 zhù,
“live”
何 hé
(family
name)
倩 qiàn,
“pretty”
侗 dòng
(name of
a minority
group)
氵
water
注 zhù,
“to pour
(liquid)”
河 hé,
“river”
清 qīng,
“clear”
洞 dòng,
“hole”
虫
insect
蛀 zhù,
“boring by
insect”
蜻 qīng,
“dragonfly”
木
tree
柱 zhù,
“pillar”
柯 kē,
“stem of
plant”
桐 tóng,
“phoenix tree”
艹
plant
苛 kē,
“severe”
菁 jīng,
“lush”
竹
bamboo
箐 qing,
“bamboo
woods”
筒 tǒng, “things
in bamboo-
tube shape”
Table 6.2. examples of semantic-Phonetic Compounds
f o r m a t i o n o f c h i n e s e c h a r a c t e r s
81
semantic elements were added to differentiate meanings more clearly, which led
to the use of semantic-phonetic compounds.
The third stage combines semantic and phonetic information to create new
characters. This is the highest stage of development, completed in the Han dynas-
ty, about two thousand years ago, when the Chinese writing system reached ma-
turity. No new method has appeared since then, although the existing categories
of characters have grown and shrunk. In modern Chinese, more than 90 percent
of characters in use are semantic-phonetic compounds; those that can be traced
back to their pictographic origins comprise less than 3 percent.
CHinese CULtUre (2):
Dates in CHinese aCCorDinG
to tHe Western CaLenDar
The date of a work of Chinese calligraphy is recorded as part of the inscriptions.
This can be done in using the traditional Chinese method, which will be dis-
cussed in Chapter 9, or using the Western solar calendar. To learn about the latter
system, you need the following basic numbers:
0 1 2 3 4 5 6 7 8 9 10
O 一 二 三 四 五 六 七 八 九 十
líng yī èr sān sì wǔ lìu qī bā jiǔ shí
11 15 20
十一 十五 二十
shí-yī shí-wǔ èr-shí
21 25 30
二十一 二十五 三十
èr-shí-yī èr-shí-wǔ sān-shí
YEAR
In English, the year is sometimes pronounced based on the four-digit number, such
as two thousand eight for 2008, and sometimes by two-digit units, such as nineteen
ninety-one for 1991. In Chinese, years are pronounced digit by digit. The four digits
are always followed by the word 年 nián, “year.” For example, 2009 and 2010 are
二OO九 年 二O一O 年
2-0-0-9 year 2-0-1-0 year
èr líng líng jiǔ nián èr líng yī líng nián
c h i n e s e w r i t i n g a n d c a l l i g r a p hy
82
MONTH
Unlike English, in which each month is indicated by a different word, months
in Chinese are numbered. For example, February would literally be “the second
month of the year.” The number is followed by 月 yuè, “month”:
一月 二月 三月 四月 五月 六月
first second third fourth fifth sixth
month month month month month month
yī yuè èr yuè sān yuè sì yuè wǔ yuè liù yuè
七月 八月 九月 十月 十一月 十二月
seventh eighth ninth tenth eleventh twelfth
month month month month month month
qī yuè bā yuè jīu yuè shí yuè shí yī yuè shí èr yuè
DAY
A specific day of the month is indicated by the number followed by 日 rì, “day”:
一日 四日 八日 十日
first day fourth day eighth day tenth day
yī rì sì rì bā rì shí rì
十一日 十四日 十八日 二十日
eleventh day fourteenth day eighteenth day twentieth day
shí yī rì shí sì rì shí bā rì èr shí rì
二十一日 二十四日 二十八日 三十日
twenty-first day twenty-fourth day twenty-eighth day thirtieth day
èr shí yī rì èr shí sì rì èr shí bā rì sān shí rì
To put a date together, use the following format. Remember, the units are
always arranged from the most general to the most specific.
___________ 年 ___________ 月 ___________ 日
___________ (year) ____ (month) ____ (day)
f o r m a t i o n o f c h i n e s e c h a r a c t e r s
83
For example:
二OO七年 三月 十四 日
2007 year third month fourteenth day
March 14, 2007
一九九九 年 六 月 二十二 日
1999 year sixth month twenty-second day
June 22, 1999
DisCUssion QUestions anD WritinG PraCtiCe
1. Name the five categories of characters discussed in this chapter, and give
three examples for each category.
2. Is Chinese a pictographic language? Why or why not?
3. Using a hard pen, write down in Chinese (1) the birthday of a friend, (2)
the date of last Christmas, and (3) the date of the coming Monday.
4. Practice character writing on page 215 in Appendix 1, first tracing and
then copying. After that, practice writing the numbers on page 216 in Appendix
1 on a separate page.
5. Examine the sheet you just copied and identify three problems in your
stroke writing. Discuss the remedy for these problems. Write the characters
again to make improvements. This can be done repeatedly.
6. Find out more about each character in your Chinese name: Is it a single-
component or multicomponent character? Is there a phonetic component and/or
a semantic component?
84
c h a p t e r s e v e n
the internal structure of Characters
and the aesthetics of Writing
As we have seen in previous chapters, Chinese characters are constructed by as-
sembling strokes in a two-dimensional square. Some characters consist of single
signs; others combine multiple components to form complex characters. This
chapter examines the shapes and structural configurations of characters, their in-
ternal layout patterns, and the proportions of components, all of which are of pri-
mary importance for writing Chinese characters. In addition, it also discusses and
illustrates basic aesthetic principles together with rules for balance and techniques
to increase stroke dynamics.
tHe strUCtUre of CHaraCters
Chinese characters are like buildings; they have to be built with good materials
and a fine design. In writing, strokes are like building materials; high quality is
most essential. The composition of parts also requires good design. Strokes must
be positioned properly in order for the character to have a pleasing and poised
look. In a way, characters are also like people, each having a distinct facial sketch,
body outline, posture, and movements.
i n t e r n a l s t r u c t u re o f c h a r a c t e r s a n d a e s t h e t i c s
85
OVERALL SHAPES OF SINGLE-COMPONENT CHARACTERS
The discussion in this section concerns the shapes of characters in the Regular
Script only. Whether it consists of a single component or multiple components,
each character has to fit into a square space.1 Within this general convention, how-
ever, some characters are not exactly square in shape. This can mostly be seen in
single-component characters. Table 7.1 displays examples of characters in various
geometric shapes as well as their meanings. In the first row are characters in the
standard rectangular shape of the Regular Script, to which the majority of char-
acters conform. The rest of the table lists the shapes that deviate slightly from the
norm. In writing, the overall shape of these characters should be maintained, just
like the face of a person in a portrait.
ShaPe examPleS
1 父 肉 门 年
father meat door year
2 月 日 目 片
moon sun eye slice
3 四 心 一 而
four heart one yet
4 上 火 人 在
up fire person be/at
5 下 可 寸 丁
down approve inch fourth
6 里 天 五 王
mile day/sky five king
7 百 言 田 甘
hundred words field sweet
8 十 千 辛 中
ten thousand laborious middle
Table 7.1. Geometric shapes of single-Component Characters
c h i n e s e w r i t i n g a n d c a l l i g r a p hy
86
ShaPe examPleS
9 不 水 東 永
no water east eternity
10 夕 力 方 万
evening force square ten thousand
LAYOUT PATTERNS AND PROPORTIONS
OF COMPOUND CHARACTERS
Multiple components in a character must fit together into an imagined square.
Often components may also be characters themselves when they are written in-
dependently. For example, the character 明 míng, “bright,” has two components,
日 and 月. 日 rì, by itself, is a character meaning “sun,” and 月 yuè is a character
meaning “moon.” Only when they are written together to fit into an imagined
square do they become a single character. Therefore, the way symbols are written
directly affects the way they will be read.
For beginning learners of Chinese, fitting multiple components into a square
is easier said than done. In English, each written sign (each letter), occupies a space
of a fixed size. Letters are arranged in a linear order. The more letters a word has,
the longer the word gets. People who are used to English writing do not usually
think about how much space a word takes up until they come to the end of a line.
When these people learn to write Chinese, they sometimes apply the same prin-
ciple to Chinese characters, particularly characters with left to right components.
Thus 明天, “tomorrow,” may be written as 日月天, “sun + moon + day”; 一杯水,
“a glass of water,” becomes 一木不水, “one + tree + no + water”; and 一小时,
“one hour,” looks like 一小日寸, “one + small + day + inch.” A personal name
like 柯桃花 may be written as 木可木兆花. For characters of other configurations,
common problems include running out of space before the character is completed
or writing the components of a character in such a way that they are out of pro-
portion. To solve these problems, one must always be conscious of the imagined
square for a character. Also required is knowledge of layout patterns and propor-
tions of components within characters. Such knowledge also helps students learn
and memorize characters.
According to statistics, more than 90 percent of modern Chinese characters are
compound characters, among which 64 percent have a left to right configuration
Table 7.1. Geometric shapes of single-Component Characters, continued
i n t e r n a l s t r u c t u re o f c h a r a c t e r s a n d a e s t h e t i c s
87
and 23 percent have a top to bottom structure.2 Some of the most common layout
patterns are shown in the three tables below. Table 7.2 displays characters in which
the components are horizontally arranged (left + [mid] + right). The components
can be of equal or unequal sizes; their approximate proportions are shown by the
figures in the second column. In category 4, the major layout pattern is left to
right, and then the part on the right is further divided into top and bottom com-
ponents.
Table 7.3 contains characters with components arranged vertically (top +
[mid] + bottom). Again, in category 4, the characters are divided primarily into
PatterN examPleS
1 龍 和 如 祥
dragon harmony as propitious
2 海 仁 法 行
sea benevolence rule journey
3 謝 街 做 樹
thank street do tree
4 福 始 精 清
blessing start refined light
Table 7.2. Characters of Left-(Mid)-right Layout Pattern
c h i n e s e w r i t i n g a n d c a l l i g r a p hy
88
PatterN examPleS
1 吉 息 志 樂
auspicious stop aspiration happy
2 字 草 華 筆
character grass best part pen
3 意 常
desire often
4 碧 想
green think
Table 7.3. Characters of the top-(Mid)-Bottom Layout Pattern
top and bottom portions before the top portion is further divided into two left to
right parts.
The third group of layout patterns, shown in Table 7.4, has surrounding or
partially surrounding structures. Note that the patterns and proportions of com-
ponents in characters are prescribed and fixed. They should not be altered in
writing. Therefore, it cannot be overemphasized that one must have a plan in
mind before writing.
ADjUSTMENTS FOR ACCOMMODATION
When multiple components come together to form a single character, two types
of adjustments are made in order to fit the parts into a square shape. The first type
is the adjustment of the shape and size of the components. For example, for a char-
acter with a horizontal arrangement of left + mid + right, such as 謝 xiè, “thank,”
the three components, 言, 身, and 寸, have to be narrowed to the proportion of
the space they are supposed to occupy within the character. The same requirement
applies to all other layout patterns.
i n t e r n a l s t r u c t u re o f c h a r a c t e r s a n d a e s t h e t i c s
89
PatterN examPleS
1 國 因 圖
country because picture
2 同 風 网
same wind net
3 可 司 习
approval manage study
4 道 起
way rise
The second type of adjustment has to do with stroke types. In order for com-
ponents to fit together, some strokes are changed into other stroke types so that
they take less space. Such adjustments are frequently made in the radical part of
a character so that other components can be accommodated without conf lict be-
tween brush strokes. Table 7.5 shows some common adjustments of this type. As
can be seen from these examples, adjustments in radicals are made in addition to
alterations to the overall shape and proportion of components. Such adjustments
have been standardized and have become part of the writing system.
aestHetiC PrinCiPLes
So far we have discussed two major reasons that Chinese calligraphy has developed
into an art form. The first is the large number of logographic symbols that provide
unlimited variety. The second is the writing instruments used, which contribute
greatly to the opportunity for artistic expression. This section illustrates anoth-
er aspect of Chinese calligraphy that has made it an independent field of study.
Throughout history, Chinese calligraphy has been practiced by many scholars,
who have left not only a wealth of masterpieces, but also well-established aesthetic
theories of calligraphy. Aesthetics is a comprehensive area of study closely related
to culture, perception, and philosophy. Thus aesthetics of Chinese calligraphy,
Table 7.4. Characters with a surrounding or Partially surrounding structure
c h i n e s e w r i t i n g a n d c a l l i g r a p hy
90
by nature, cannot be talked about without also discussing Chinese culture, phi-
losophy, and other forms of art such as architecture, painting, music, and dance.
Such discussions and the general aesthetic principles shared by different art forms
exist at an abstract level. While this book is not intended to offer a comprehensive
discussion of the aesthetics of calligraphy,3 some basic aesthetic principles relevant
to brush writing at the beginning level are illustrated and substantiated in various
chapters, such as the strength of brush strokes in Chapter 4, the management of
space in Chapter 12, the rhythmic vitality of writing in Chapter 13, and balance
and other principles that improve the dynamics of writing below. The principles
discussed below are most applicable to the Regular Script.
comPoNeNtS character
other
examPleS
maJor
chaNge
1 人言 信 trust 何他休住
→
2 木主 柱 pole 村松梅桃 →
3 土也 地 ground 址坎境 →
4 王見 現 now 玲珠球
5 金十 針 needle 錢釘鈔
6 竹由 笛 flute 筆筷笑
→
7 足包 跑 run 跳跟蹈 足 →
8 食反 飯 meal 館餓餡 食 → 飠
9 示畐 福 blessing 祥祖神社 示 → 礻
10 衣由 袖 sleeve 衫初補 衣 → 衤
Table 7.5. adjustments for accommodation
i n t e r n a l s t r u c t u re o f c h a r a c t e r s a n d a e s t h e t i c s
91
BALANCE
Balance is the essence of the world. It is something we learn from the moment
we take our first step. Later in life, we learn that balance is not only a physical
phenomenon; it can also be psychological and aesthetic. Calligraphy is an excellent
example of this fusion because every character has a center of gravity. When the
weight of a character is off-balance, it looks all wrong. Practicing calligraphy is a
good way to improve one’s sense of visual balance. In order for a character to be
well balanced, its center of visual gravity should also be the center of the character.
In writing, one should always be aware of where this center is. Using a grid sheet
helps to keep this center visible.
In general, a character should stand on its foot or feet without looking as if it
is stumbling. In most cases, the quantity of occupied space around a center or on
both sides of an imagined vertical line should be the same or very close. Although
this proportion is mostly instinctual and cannot be calculated, taking an initial
look at some characters will help you. The majority of the characters below con-
tain a vertical line that goes through the middle of the character. This line, or its
extension, can serve as the vertical center of the character. In the last two charac-
ters (其 and 愛), however, this line does not exist and has to be imagined.
吉 雨 水 王 樂 其 愛
“good” “rain” “water” “king” “happy” “its” “love”
The following are three specific rules for balance.
Balance Rule 1
It is important for beginners to note that vertically arranged components should
be centered and balanced on an imagined vertical line. This also applies to com-
ponents as part of a character, as shown in the last three examples in Figure 7.1,
道, 流, and 福.
Balance Rule 2
Pairs of down-left and down-right slants at the bottom of a character are like the
two feet of a person. They should finish (rest) on an imagined horizontal line.
This also applies to cases such as 水 and 樂 below, where the downward slants
hang on both sides of a vertical line.
人 天 愛 秋 水 樂
“person” “day/sky” “love” “autumn” “water” “happy”
c h i n e s e w r i t i n g a n d c a l l i g r a p hy
92
Balance Rule 3
To keep components balanced, some characters are not written in an exactly square
shape. This ref lects a very important aesthetic principle in Chinese calligraphy:
the principle of asymmetrical balance. When the left and right components of a
character vary in complexity (that is, in the number of strokes), the positioning of
the parts is often adjusted. For example, the characters below have a more complex
component on the right. This component is written lower than the one on the left.
The two components almost line up on top but not at the bottom.
峥 吃 硬 明
“lofty” “to eat” “hard” “bright”
When the component on the right side of a character has a vertical line go-
ing down, this component is also written lower. As an illustration, look at the
brush-written character 即 jì, “at present” (Figure 7.3). The character 即 in (1) is
written with its two parts at exactly the same height. This, however, creates a feel
of instability, as if the character could stumble to the right. In (2), the component
on the right is written lower, with the vertical line reaching down. The result is
a much more stable structure, with the parts on both sides of the vertical line in
good balance. The character in (3) shows this balance through a grid. Below are
more examples.
Figure 7.2. the balancing of components in the char-
acter 崢 zhēng, “lofty and steep.” this character is a
semantic-phonetic compound. the left side is the se-
mantic component, meaning “mountain”; the right side
is the phonetic component, pronounced zhēng.
“book” “foot” “will” “desire” “character” “way” “f low” “blessing”
Figure 7.1. Balance rule 1.
i n t e r n a l s t r u c t u re o f c h a r a c t e r s a n d a e s t h e t i c s
93
都 却 部 雄
“all” “but” “part” “masculine”
The concept of asymmetrical balance can also be explained by comparing the
two scales in Figure 7.4. The one in (1) has equal amount of weight on both sides;
the one in (2) has unequal weight, yet its balance is still maintained. An uneven
distribution of weight, as shown in Figure 7.4, can be seen in many Chinese char-
acters. The characters in Figure 7.2 above have more weight on the right side. The
characters in Figure 7.5 below are the opposite: the left side of the characters has
more weight. Again, recognizing and maintaining aesthetic balance is based on
experience. It requires practice and artistic talent to perceive and produce asym-
metric structures with perfect balance and harmony.
OTHER AESTHETIC CONSIDERATIONS
1. In general, horizontal lines should be level, and vertical lines should go straight
down. In Regular (and also Running) Script, however, horizontal lines go slightly
up, about 5 degrees. Compare the styles in Figure 7.6. As these examples show, the
slight upward tilt of the horizontal lines in Regular Script gives the writing a sense
of motion. This kinetic tendency is even more obvious in the Running Style.
Figure 7.3. the balancing of components in the character 即 jì, “at present.”
Figure 7.4. the balance of scales.
c h i n e s e w r i t i n g a n d c a l l i g r a p hy
94
Note that all the horizontal lines on the same page should slope to the same degree
(they should be parallel even when they appear in different portions of a text). This
uniformity of angle, while maintaining a dynamic posture and momentum, keeps
the text as an organic whole. Also note that this organic look is a natural tendency;
as a beginner, be careful not to overdo it. All the vertical lines, no matter in what
script, should go straight down.
2. If there are two parallel vertical strokes in a character, the one on the right
is the primary stroke. It should be written slightly thicker than the one on the left
and come down slightly lower. This rule also applies to boxes.
日 田 白 息 東 意 書
“sun” “field” “white” “stop” “east” “desire” “write”
Figure 7.5. 弘 hóng, “grand,” and 也 yěě , “also.”
PriNtiNg regular ruNNiNg
三 三 三 “three”
成 成 成 “accomplish”
林 林 林 “woods”
我 我 我 “I, me”
Figure 7.6. Printing, regular, and running styles—a comparison.
i n t e r n a l s t r u c t u re o f c h a r a c t e r s a n d a e s t h e t i c s
95
3. All the horizontal lines involved in writing a box (including the horizontal
lines inside) are parallel, but the vertical lines may vary. The vertical lines of a tall
and slim box (as in 日 and 息 above) should be parallel and straight down, but in a
wide and short box (田, 白, 東, 意, and 書) they should be written wider on top
and narrower at the bottom.
4. Strokes in simple characters can be written slightly thicker, while those in
complex characters should be thinner with a more compact structure. The overall
look of a complex character, although it contains a large number of strokes, must
be slender rather than bulky.
二 人 vs. 餐 繁 紫
“two” “person” “meal” “complex” “purple”
5. Each character is a united, poised unit. No part should look crowded or too
loose. In characters with more than two parts side by side, the strokes should be
evenly positioned without conf lict. The relationship between components is very
much like relations among people, which function best and are most in balance
when there is mutual respect, dependence, and coordination.
佛 龍 樂 緣
“Buddha” “dragon” “happy” “destiny”
6. Horizontal lines should be arranged at equal intervals. This creates a sense
of order and predictability, which is one of the important characteristics of the
Regular Script. However, the length of horizontal lines should be varied to avoid
a crushed look.
書 至 壽
“Han” “true” “longevity”
7. Variation within unity is key in Chinese calligraphy. Strive for variation
when writing the same strokes within a character.
三 川 注
“three” “river” “pour”
8. Variation may be achieved at the expense of changing stroke types. For
example, the character 餐 cān, “meal,” has three down-right slant strokes on the
right side (shown by the three components written separately below). When the
c h i n e s e w r i t i n g a n d c a l l i g r a p hy
96
components are put together to form a complex character, two of these down-
right strokes, one on top and the other at the bottom, are changed into dots to
avoid repetition:
又 人 良 → 餐
Writing characters with good composition is not simply a matter of following
rules. Often there are no written rules, and the writer’s choice is based on his or
her own judgment. Good design and good execution require good taste, which
must be cultivated by observation, practice, and experience.
CHinese CULtUre (3):
WHat is Written in CHinese CaLLiGraPHy?
Chinese calligraphy endows the beauty of form with the beauty of content. Tra-
ditionally, when brush writing played a major role in written communication, all
writing was done with a brush. In modern society, where it is mainly a form of art,
the content of writing becomes more selective. What is written is expected to be
elegant and tasteful to serve the function of art. Calligraphy is also a cultural arti-
fact. It embodies Chinese philosophy, beliefs, values, and lifestyle. What is written
with a brush and put up for display should be culturally appropriate.
Generally speaking, depending on the space available, the content of the main text
of a calligraphy piece may vary from a single character to an idiomatic phrase, lines
from a poem, or even an entire work of prose. Some types of short idiomatic phrases
that commonly appear in calligraphy pieces are listed below. These examples are se-
lected partly for their relatively simple characters and straightforward meaning. For
each example, a word-for-word translation is given first, followed by the translation of
the entire saying or phrase. Additional examples can be found in Appendix 1.
1. Phrases expressing appreciation of nature
日月山川 sun-moon-mountain-river, “sun, moon,
mountain, and river”
江上清風 river-on-light-breeze, “gentle breeze on the river”
日出 sun-rise, “sunrise”
春花秋月 spring-f lower-autumn-moon, “spring f lowers
and autumn moon”
鳥語花香 bird-chirp-f lower-fragrant, “chirping birds and
fragrant f lowers”
2. Phrases expounding a philosophical point or view
佛 Buddha
i n t e r n a l s t r u c t u re o f c h a r a c t e r s a n d a e s t h e t i c s
97
无为 no-action, “No action.”
道法自然 Dao-follow-nature, “The Dao is modeled after
nature.”
大道無門 great-Dao-no-gate, “The Great Dao is gateless.”
(You can approach it in a thousand ways.)
仁義道德 kindheartedness-justice-morality, “humanity,
justice, and morality”
3. Phrases praising or promoting a positive feature of society or
a person
光明正大 open-righteous, “open and righteous”
誠信 honesty-trust, “honesty and trust”
仁者壽 benevolent-person-longevity, “Benevolence leads to
longevity.”
祥和 auspiciousness-harmony, “auspiciousness and harmony”
和平 peace
4. Phrases expressing good wishes
福壽 happiness-longevity, “happiness and longevity”
吉祥 auspiciousness, “good fortune”
萬事如意 everything-as-desired, “May everything go as
you wish.”
長樂永康 long-happy-forever-healthy, “Happiness and
health forever.”
5. Phrases that encourage learning and diligence
溫故知新 review-old-know-new, “Gain new insights
through studying old materials.”
自強不息 self-strengthen-no-ending, “Exert oneself
constantly.”
功到自然成 effort-complete-natural-success, “Continuous
effort yields sure success.”
靜思 quiet-thinking, “quiet thinking.”
志在高遠 ambition-be-high-far, “Aim high.”
Be wary when choosing your own phrase or saying for the content of a piece,
especially for display, if you are unfamiliar with Chinese culture. In addition to
using common sense, the following kinds of phrases should generally be avoid-
ed. First, avoid overt and direct expression of personal love and affection, such
as, 我愛你, wǒ-ài-nı̌ , “I love you.” Second, since traditional Chinese culture is
strongly inf luenced by Confucianism, concepts and sayings that do not conform
c h i n e s e w r i t i n g a n d c a l l i g r a p hy
98
to principles of Confucian thinking are frowned upon. Once a student wrote 腳
踏兩隻船, “feet-straddle-two-boats,” as a piece, thinking that being prepared for
various situations was a good principle. He was unaware that this phrase has the
negative connotation of “sitting on the fence,” which violates Confucian ethics
of commitment and loyalty. A person familiar with Chinese culture usually has a
tacit understanding of what should or should not be written in a calligraphy piece.
Check if you can.
Needless to say, the content of writing is determined by the purpose of writing.
In modern society, especially in the West, Chinese characters in brush calligraphy
appear in a much greater variety of contexts than traditionally, on T-shirts, greet-
ing cards, bracelets and earrings, small ornaments, and even tattoos. The content
of writing also adapts to the new culture. Greeting cards and writing attached
to f lower bouquets and baskets for various occasions, for example, convey good
wishes of all kinds:
生日快樂 birthday-happy, “Happy Birthday!”
新年快樂 new-year-happy, “Happy New Year!”
聖誕快樂 Christmas-happy, “Merry Christmas!”
恭賀新春 good-wishes-new-spring, “Happy Chinese
New Year!”
早日康復 early-recovery, “Get well soon.”
同心永結 same-heart-forever-unite, “Your union is
forever.”
馬到成功 horse-arrive-success, “[I wish you] speedy
success!”
一路順風 all-way-smooth, “Bon voyage!” or “Have a
good trip.”
These sayings are for special occasions. They would not normally be written
and displayed as a piece of artwork.
DisCUssion QUestions anD WritinG PraCtiCe
1. Examine the following characters in Appendix 1 and discuss what rules
illustrated in this chapter apply to writing these characters:
明 on page 215
年 書 on page 216
和而不同 on page 218
日月山川 on page 219
千里之行 始於足下 on pages 225 and 226
2. Practice the character writing on page 218 in Appendix 1. From this point
i n t e r n a l s t r u c t u re o f c h a r a c t e r s a n d a e s t h e t i c s
99
on, idiomatic expressions and sayings such as 和而不同 hé-ér-bù-tóng, “Harmony
with diversity,” will be provided for writing practice. The meaning of each char-
acter is indicated, and the meaning of the entire phrase appears in square brack-
ets at the bottom of the page. These sayings are good candidates for the main
text of a calligraphy piece.
3. Find out more about each character in your Chinese name: its compo-
nents, their proportion, and their layout pattern; how the characters should be
written stroke by stroke in the correct stroke order; what balance rules or aes-
thetic rules discussed in this chapter apply in writing the character.
4. Practice writing your Chinese name first using a grid sheet and then re-
ducing the size of the characters. It is important to practice this because later on
when you try to produce a calligraphy piece, your signature, which is part of the
inscription (see Chapter 12), should be written smaller than the characters in the
main text.
5. Three common layout patterns of calligraphy pieces are shown on page
219 in Appendix 1. Sketch your first calligraphy piece now using one of these
patterns. Details of composition will be discussed in Chapter 12.
6. Examine the sheet you just wrote. Identify three problems in character
structure and balance. Discuss the remedy for these problems before writing the
characters again to make improvements.
100
c h a p t e r e i g h t
the Development of
Chinese Calligraphy i
The Seal Scripts
The wonder of the Chinese brush resides not only in its ability to write an infi-
nite variety of dots and lines, but also in the diverse scripts it produces. Chinese
written signs have evolved through thousands of years, producing many different
scripts and styles along the way, each with its own unique qualities. These styles
are still in use today, in daily life and in art. In China, the knowledge of different
writing styles is taken for granted in everyday life as well as in appreciating cal-
ligraphic artwork. The interplay of writing style, content, and purpose adds even
more dimensions. Therefore, a review of the historical development of Chinese
calligraphy and a general understanding of the various scripts are essential for new
learners. This is our goal in Chapters 8 through 11, in which major scripts and
styles are examined through history. Four scripts/styles are chosen for you, one in
each chapter, to try in writing practice.
an overvieW of sCriPts anD styLes
The Chinese script spawned one of the most literate cultures of the world. The
history of Chinese calligraphy is as long as that of the Chinese writing system,
d eve l o p m e n t o f c h i n e s e c a l l i g r a p hy i : t h e s e a l s c r i p t s
101
which began more than three thousand years ago. Figure 8.1 shows at a glance the
development of major scripts and styles through the ages, using the character 鱼
yú, “fish,” as an example.
Several points should be made before we examine Figure 8.1 in detail. First,
the scripts did not develop along a single line in time. More than one script could
be developed and used simultaneously. The Small Seal and Clerical scripts, for
example, both developed around the Warring States period.1 Small Seal is gener-
ally thought to be the older of the two, partly because it belongs to the ancient
scripts, while Clerical Script represents the beginning of modern scripts. A second
and related point is that the development of the various scripts was not mutually
exclusive. That is, the beginning of a new script did not define the end of an old
Figure 8.1. an overview of scripts and styles.
c h i n e s e w r i t i n g a n d c a l l i g r a p hy
102
one. Rather, they complemented each other. The development of Regular Script,
for example, helped the Cursive and Running styles mature. Third, the exact time
of the development of various scripts, especially that of the Regular Script, is still
an issue very much unsettled. Fourth, the variation among scripts is gradual. Many
of the less important variations both within and between the major scripts will not
be discussed here.2
Strictly speaking, only four scripts played major roles in the development of the
Chinese writing system: Great Seal (大篆 dàzhuàn), Small Seal (小篆 xiǎozhuàn),
Clerical (隸書 lìshū), and Regular (楷書 kǎishū). They are considered major scripts
because at different times they were formally adopted for official documentation.
Great Seal Script is a cover term for several ancient scripts used over 1,200 years
before the Qin dynasty (221–206 BCE), including Shell and Bone Script (甲骨文
jiǎgǔwén), Bronze Script (金文 jīnwén), and Stone Drum Script (石鼓文 shígǔwén).3
Since the Qin dynasty, three major script changes have taken place: from Great
Seal to Small Seal, from Small Seal to Clerical, and from Clerical to Regular.
The Running (行書 xíngshū) and Cursive styles (草書 cǎoshū) were initially de-
veloped as informal ways to increase writing speed. Later they were also adopted
for art. However, they do not represent major script changes; they only ref lect
modifications of the major scripts. As will be discussed below, they are much less
standardized and are not used in official documents. For that reason, they are re-
ferred to as styles rather than scripts.
tHe Great seaL sCriPts
Legend has it that, about five thousand years ago, Chinese written signs were
created by a four-eyed dragon god named Cang Jie, who observed animal foot-
prints, bird scratches, rain, wind, thunder, and the shapes of natural objects such
as mountains, rivers, and tree shadows, and created Chinese characters based on
them. When he did so, it is said, the spirits cried in agony and millet rained from
Heaven because the innermost secrets of nature had been revealed. This account
is part of Chinese mythology. A more plausible explanation is that Chinese writ-
ten signs originated in multiple locations. Cang Jie, as a minister of the Yellow
Emperor (ca. 2600 BCE), may have been the first person to compile written signs
for official use.
THE SHELL AND BONE SCRIPT
The earliest known examples of Chinese writing are inscriptions on scapulas of
oxen and plastrons of turtles dating from the thirteenth century BCE during the
late Shang dynasty.4 At that time, the Shang people sought to learn the future
through a method of divination that consisted of drilling holes into the underside
d eve l o p m e n t o f c h i n e s e c a l l i g r a p hy i : t h e s e a l s c r i p t s
103
of a turtle shell and placing the shell over a fire so that it cracks. This would allow
people to see the appearance of oracular lines. By reading the direction, length,
and thickness of these lines, possible outcomes would be predicted or interpreted.
Afterwards, the results of the divination would be carved onto the shell or onto a
piece of bone (hence the name Shell and Bone Script, also known as oracle bone in-
Figure 8.3. replica of shell and Bone script carved on stone. yinxu Museum,
anyang. [ photo by wendan li ]
Figure 8.2. shell and Bone script rub-
bing. yinxu Museum, anyang.
[ photo by wendan li ]
c h i n e s e w r i t i n g a n d c a l l i g r a p hy
104
scriptions). The contents of the inscriptions shed light on daily life three millennia
ago. They contain divinations and predictions about imminent military campaigns
and hunting expeditions, weather forecasts, health and recovery, dream interpreta-
tion, and auspicious dates for weddings, births, hunting, and farming. Shell and
Bone Script was not known to the world until 1899. The fascinating events and
people involved in its discovery tie China’s ancient history to its recent past.
The turn of the twentieth century was a period of chaos for China. After los-
ing two wars with Japan and England, the Qing government was forced to open
its doors to foreign powers. In response to the government’s obvious weakness, in-
tellectuals began calling for China to embrace Western science and philosophy. At
this time, the earliest scripts that had been identified in the study of the Chinese
written language were those from bronzeware of the Zhou dynasty (ca. 1100–256
BCE). Records of the earlier Xia and Shang dynasties (ca. 2200–1100 BCE) did
appear in the Shi ji (Records of the historian) written by Sima Qian in the Han
dynasty (206 BCE –220 CE), but they looked fictitious and comprised little more
than a list of kings. With so little evidence, Chinese historians had serious doubts
about the existence of the Xia and Shang dynasties. Some even proposed to elimi-
nate them from historical accounts.
In 1899 Wang Yirong, director of the Imperial Academy in Beijing and a
scholar of ancient bronze inscriptions, fell ill with malaria. He was prescribed tra-
ditional Chinese medicine with an ingredient called longgu, “dragon bones.” As
he was examining the packages of medicine, he was struck by the distinctive look
of some of the bone pieces, on which he could see carvings resembling scripts on
ancient bronze vessels. Driven by curiosity and believing that these symbols might
belong to an ancient script, Wang bought more bones with carvings and was
eventually able to confirm his hypothesis. The characters on the bone pieces that
he was able to decipher—sun, moon, mountain, water, rain, and others—clearly
predated the Bronze Script he knew.
Overjoyed by his discovery, Wang dispatched members of his household to
all the pharmacies in Beijing and spent his life savings buying up all their longgu.
The merchants, however, would not reveal the source of their goods for fear of
competition.
A year after that, in 1900, the Boxer Uprising raged across the nation to pro-
test foreign occupation of Chinese territories. The Boxers were groups of mystical
warriors whose reputation included invulnerability to bullets and other weap-
ons. The Empress Dowager, who held supreme power in the Qing government,
secretly summoned the Boxers to Beijing in the hope that they could oust the
foreign powers from China. With her support, the Boxers attacked the foreign
legations. Within days, the Eight-Power Allied Forces, which included twen-
ty thousand Europeans, Americans, and Japanese, arrived. The Boxers, armed
only with knives and spears, could not defeat foreign troops who had guns and
d eve l o p m e n t o f c h i n e s e c a l l i g r a p hy i : t h e s e a l s c r i p t s
105
cannons; they were mown down like grass in the streets of Beijing. Before f leeing
the capital on a “hunting tour” of the western provinces, the Empress Dowager
hastily appointed Wang Yirong commander-in-chief of the government’s defend-
ing troops. Soon, the city was captured. In shame and frustration and having little
choice, Wang Yirong, who was credited for the discovery of the Shell and Bone
Script, took his own life.
After his death, Wang’s bone collection came into the possession of Liu E, a
friend of Wang and a man of considerable wealth and erudition, who subsequently
started his own collection and search. By 1903 Liu had collected more than 5,000
pieces, from which he selected 1,058, made ink rubbings, and published a com-
pilation under the title Tieyun Collection of Tortoise Shells (Tieyun was Liu’s official
name). The book and the information it disclosed about oracle bones sparked a
wave of investigation by both Chinese and non-Chinese scholars.
Searches identified the village of Xiaotun in Anyang, Henan Province (Figure
8.4), as the source of the bones. At that time, Xiaotun was only one of an abun-
dance of small farming villages in the Central Plains area where it was common-
place for antiques and bones to turn up when farmers hoed their fields. Sold to
merchants by the kilo, for about the same price as six small shaobing (baked cakes),
bones were ground up and used as medicine for fever and skin ailments. After the
small farming village was identified as the major cache of oracle bones, looters,
collectors, and foreign traders f looded the area. Now the bones were sold accord-
ing to the number of characters they bore.5 Forgery became a serious problem
both at Xiaotun and in big-city antique markets.
In 1910, scholars arrived at Xiaotun eager to begin work on the puzzle of the
bones. What they did not know was that China was already on the eve of the 1911
nationalist revolution that would overthrow the Qing dynasty. For the next fifteen
years, the country would be immersed in civil wars that would hamper further
Figure 8.4. xiaotun village, anyang, Henan Province.
c h i n e s e w r i t i n g a n d c a l l i g r a p hy
106
exploration of the area. In 1917, Wang Guowei, another renowned scholar, was
able to decipher the oracle bone inscriptions of the names of the Shang kings and
to reconstruct a complete Shang genealogy. The outcome of his study perfectly
matched the accounts in the Records of the Historian, confirming the existence of
the legendary Shang dynasty and the archaeological importance of the discovery
of oracle bones.
After the civil wars ended, archaeologists conducted fifteen organized
excavations at Xiaotun between 1928 and 1937. Soon they began to uncover ruined
foundations of great antiquity, including royal palaces, royal tombs, and large
amounts of bronze, jade, and pottery artifacts. One of the excavations conducted
in 1936, for example, unearthed 17,096 shell and bone pieces from one pit! This site
was eventually identified as Yin, the magnificent capital of the Shang dynasty. Ap-
parently the pit had been an archive of the royal court, containing detailed records
of various activities of the Shang dynasty royal family and aristocrats.
When the puzzle pieces were put together, the veil of mystery over Shang and
Yin was lifted: Social problems had led to the dynasty’s decline. Its last capital,
Yin, was finally abandoned to fall into ruins when the Zhou dynasty established its
capital near modern-day Xi’an. Quickly the Shang ruins were lost, their location
forgotten, and the once-great city of Yin was relegated to legend along with the dy-
nasty that founded it. The village of Xiaotun was built right on top of those ruins,
some two thousand years later, without any knowledge of their magnificent past.
To date, about 154,000 pieces of oracle bones have been unearthed. Warfare
and trade brought many of them overseas, where they are displayed in a number
of the world’s finest museums. The number of characters identified so far amounts
to about 4,700; fewer than half have been deciphered.6 The discovery of the Shell
and Bone Script and the Yin ruins uncovered a part of China’s history that had
remained buried and obscured for more than 3,300 years. When the script was
deciphered and documents read, the once-mythical Shang dynasty became his-
torical. The discovery provided invaluable new resources for the study of Shang
(and possibly even earlier) society and culture in areas such as history, politics,
economics, philosophy, and astronomy.
For the study of the Chinese language, the discovery of the Shell and Bone
Script pushed the material evidence of the Chinese written language back to the
Shang dynasty. It is agreed that Shell and Bone Script is a mature language with a
sophisticated grammatical system and all six classes of characters that are still in use
today. This indicates that the Chinese language must have undergone earlier stag-
es of development, although no records of that evolution have been found. Many
symbols in the Shell and Bone Script resemble physical objects in the real world.
For this reason, many contemporary artists use the classical script in their modern
artwork. This adds interest to the writing and gives an impression of antiquity.
In the Shell and Bone Script, the square shape of the writing space for each
d eve l o p m e n t o f c h i n e s e c a l l i g r a p hy i : t h e s e a l s c r i p t s
107
character is already evident. The space is divided into top and bottom, left and
right, or inside and outside portions. Each symbol has a visual center around
which the strokes are distributed to maintain the balance and stability of the char-
acter. Although many symbols are pictographic, some basic stroke types are in
the process of being formed. Because the symbols were carved onto hard surfaces
by sharp tools, the strokes are thin, stiff, and straight, with sharp angles. The
script also shows the emerging stage of the three essential elements of calligraphy:
stroke method, character structure, and principles of composition. The traditional
method of arranging vertical lines of text from right to the left was also established
in this period.7
THE BRONzE AND STONE AND DRUM SCRIPTS
As China entered the strife-ridden era called the Zhou dynasty, Great Seal Script
continued to mature with significantly more characters. The late Zhou was a
remarkable period in Chinese intellectual history. Using this script, scholars such
as Lao Zi, Confucius, and others composed some of the greatest Chinese classics,
such as the Book of Poetry, the I Ching, Analects, and the Spring and Autumn Annals.
Inscriptions on ritual bronze vessels in classical China—hence the name
Bronze Script 金文 jīnwén—are well known (Figures 8.5 and 8.6). In the Shang
and Zhou periods, bronze was the most precious metal, the use of which signified
Figure 8.5. Bronze script on xiaochenyu
zun (liquor container) from Western
Zhou. [ from zhu, zhuanshu shijiang, p. 22,
where no indication of source is given ]
c h i n e s e w r i t i n g a n d c a l l i g r a p hy
108
the authority and power of the rulers. A little later, in about 800 BCE, Chinese
characters were also chiseled on stone. This was known as Stone and Drum Script
石鼓文 shígǔwén. Owing to the variety of workmanship and materials, characters
in these scripts had thicker and fuller strokes and were more rounded at the cor-
ners than the Shell and Bone Script. They also look more artistic and decorative.
Up to the Warring States period (ca. fifth century–221 BCE), China was di-
vided into separate, isolated feudal states with no central government and, there-
fore, no standardized written language. Scripts were used by convention, with no
collaboration across states. New written symbols, unique to their own regions,
were developed as the need for written records arose. The situation was chaotic as
regional scripts matured separately. Characters were written in different shapes,
some resembling tadpoles (蝌蚪文 kēdǒuwén, Tadpole Script), bird scratches (鳥跡
文 niǎojìwén, Bird Scratch Script), or animal footprints (獸痕文 shòuhénwén, Ani-
mal Footprint Script). The direction of writing varied as well. For example, verti-
cal columns could be arranged from left to right or vice versa. Nor were characters
within the same text uniform in size, as can be seen in Figures 8.4, 8.5, and 8.6.
Because multiple versions of the same character were being created and used by
different people simultaneously in different areas, a scribe could choose any ver-
sion. As the situation got more and more out of control, language reform was
called for and actually took place.
Figure 8.6. Bronze script on Maogong ding
(container for cooking or sacrifice) from Western
Zhou. [ from zhu, zhuanshu shijiang, p. 26, where no
indication of source is given ]
d eve l o p m e n t o f c h i n e s e c a l l i g r a p hy i : t h e s e a l s c r i p t s
109
tHe sMaLL seaL sCriPt
During the Warring States period, the Qin state (one of the seven major states) sur-
passed and conquered the other six, which brought about the beginning of the Qin
dynasty in 221 BCE. The First Emperor of Qin, who was also the first emperor
of China as a united country, demanded total control. The law under his rule was
extremely severe. He built the Great Wall to fence out northern invaders as well as
canals and irrigation systems to protect farmers from droughts and f lood. He tried
to obliterate the past by burning classics. He also built postal highways and stan-
dardized calendars, currency, and measurements. Most important to this discussion,
he standardized the written language, decreeing that Small Seal was the only legal
written language. Those who did not comply were severely punished, even with
death. His language policy 書同文 shūtóngwén, “writing the same script,” played a
crucial role in the development of the Chinese writing system and the art of callig-
raphy. For his cruelty, however, he is considered the number one tyrant in China.
To standardize the written script, the First Emperor had Prime Minister Li Si
modify the Great Seal into a new script. An official index of three thousand char-
acters was worked out for common use. This new script was called Qínzhuàn 秦
篆, Qin Seal, or xiǎozhuàn 小篆, Small Seal. To commemorate his achievements,
the First Emperor traveled around the country and erected stone monuments in
the eastern provinces. Figure 8.7 is an example of the writing on the stone tablets
originally on the top of Mount Tai (in today’s Shandong Province), later moved
indoors to protect them from the weather. The characters carved on these monu-
ments are in the Small Seal Script. It is believed that most of the writing on these
stones was done by Li Si.
Figure 8.7. rubbings from a Mount tai
tablet in small seal script (Qin dynasty).
[ from nan and ji, long zhi wu, p. 19, where
no indication of source is given ]
c h i n e s e w r i t i n g a n d c a l l i g r a p hy
110
CHARACTERISTICS OF SMALL SEAL SCRIPT
Compared to Great Seal Script, which is bold and unconstrained, characters in
Small Seal are pretty and tactful. Here, in brief, are some major characteristics of
the Small Seal Script. More details will be discussed in the next section.
1. Characters of equal size are written in a standard vertical
rectangular shape.
2. Strokes have even thickness.
3. The direction of writing is standardized as top to bottom,
with columns arranged right to left. All characters are evenly
spaced.
4. Variant forms of the same character used in different areas
are eliminated, keeping one standard character for one concept.
Small Seal Script was actually in use before the Qin language reform. The
First Emperor and Li Si standardized the style and made it official. The picto-
graphic nature of the symbols was greatly reduced and stylized by the modifica-
tions. The standardization and the replacement of Great Seal with Small Seal were
important and necessary milestones in the development of Chinese writing. (See
the examples of Small Seal Script in Figures 8.8 through 8.11.)
WRITING SMALL SEAL
Many of the brush-writing techniques used for Regular Script and much of its
terminology are also relevant for writing other scripts, including Small Seal.
Strokes
Small Seal is written with only two major types of strokes: straight lines and
curved lines. All strokes are written with the center-tip technique (see Chapter 4)
but show no variation in thickness. The strokes are solid, full, symmetrical, and
strong. They all have rounded and smooth endings, produced with the reverse-tip
technique (see Chapter 4). The strokes can be thick (called “ jade chopsticks”) as in
Figure 8.8 or thin (called “iron wire”) as in Figure 8.11. Strict discipline and lack
of free expression are evident in this script.
Straight lines. Your brush should move slowly, even when writing straight lines
(Figure 8.12). Use reverse tip to make rounded endings, and use center tip as much
as possible. Remember, all strokes should be even in thickness; there is no pressing
and lifting.
Curves. The Small Seal Script is written with a large number of curved lines
Figure 8.10. small seal by Wu rangzhi (1799–1870) of the Qing
dynasty. [ from zhu, zhuanshu shijiang, p. 77, where no indication of
source is given ]
Figure 8.11. small seal by Wang shu
(1668–1743) of the Qing dynasty.
[ from zhu, zhuanshu shijiang, p. 73,
where no indication of source is given ]
Figure 8.8. small seal (in the “jade chopsticks” style) by
Li yangbing (715?–?) of the tang dynasty. [ from zhu, zhuan-
shu shijiang, p. 45, where no indication of source is given ]
Figure 8.9. small seal by Deng shiru (1743–1805) of the
Qing dynasty. [ from zhu, zhuanshu shijiang, p. 76, where no
indication of source is given ]
c h i n e s e w r i t i n g a n d c a l l i g r a p hy
112
(Figure 8.13). This is why the script looks wiry. Note that curves should also have
rounded endings with no variation in thickness.
Circles. Circles are basically combinations of curved lines. There is no rule on
how they should be written. Make sure that joints are smooth (Figure 8.14).
Structure of Characters
The uniform stroke technique used in writing Small Seal leaves the structure of
characters open to manipulation and maneuvering. Therefore, characters in Small
Seal Script have a number of distinct features.
Figure 8.12. small seal: straight lines.
Figure 8.14. small seal: circles and dots.
Figure 8.13. small seal: curved lines.
d eve l o p m e n t o f c h i n e s e c a l l i g r a p hy i : t h e s e a l s c r i p t s
113
First, in contrast to Regular Script, in which characters are basically square,
characters in Small Seal are tall and slim. The ratio of width to height is 3:5. All
characters are written the same size, which creates a very formal impression.
Second, many characters in Small Seal Script are symmetrical (that is, if a char-
acter is divided vertically in the middle, the part on the left is exactly the same as
the part on the right). This is not the case in Regular Script. A comparison of some
characters in these two scripts shows these differences clearly.
火 山 口 京 車 生 行 公
“fire” “mountain” “mouth” “capital” “vehicle” “birth” “ journey” “public”
Third, many Small Seal characters are tight in the upper part and elongated in
the lower portion. This gives the characters a look of elegant poise:
石 平 見 不 開 而 天 大 北
“stone” “f lat” “see” “no” “open” “yet” “day/sky” “big” “north”
Fourth, for characters with a left to right arrangement, the two parts are not
always given the same height. The part with fewer strokes is often written slightly
higher (see the discussion of asymmetric balance in Chapter 7).
如 的 時 次 助 作 塊 組
When you practice Small Seal Script, you will quickly discover that it is a
serpentine and meandering style, quite difficult to write even though it has few-
er stroke types than Regular Script. The difficulty stems from the high-quality
strokes, the strict shape of the characters, the positioning of parts, and the even
distribution of curved lines that must be painstakingly executed. As a result, the
speed of writing is very slow. This is probably one of the reasons why the script
did not remain in practical use for very long. It was soon replaced by the Clerical
Script, a much faster way of writing, which will be discussed in the next chapter.
c h i n e s e w r i t i n g a n d c a l l i g r a p hy
114
Seal Script is still commonly used for seal engraving (see Chapter 12), although
originally the script had no connection with seal carving.
DisCUssion QUestions anD WritinG PraCtiCe
1. What are the characteristics of the Small Seal Script?
2. How is Small Seal different from the Regular Script, which you have been
writing since the beginning of this program?
3. Compare the two characters 天 tiān, “day/sky,” and 雨 yǔ, “rain,” in each pair
and discuss how they should be written differently in the two scripts.
4. What are the features of Shell and Bone Script and the Bronze Script, and
how are they different from the Small Seal Script?
5. Practice writing the Small Seal model characters on page 220 in Appendix
1. You have already practiced writing some of these characters in the Regular
Script. Before writing them in Small Seal, (1) compare the characters in the two
scripts so that you have a clear understanding of how they differ, and (2) think
about the brush techniques involved in order to produce the differences.
Note that, unlike the Regular Script, which is written following a strict stroke
order, there is no prescribed stroke order for Small Seal characters. Follow the general
guideline of top to bottom and left to right. Curved lines can be produced by com-
bining two or more strokes, but make sure the joints are smooth. Remember, do not
press down or lift the brush as you write. All the strokes should be even in thickness.
6. Observe the text “A journey of thousands of miles starts from the first step”
in Small Seal Script on page 221 in Appendix 1. Note that the main text reads ver-
tically, first the line on the right, and then the line on the left. For comparison, the
same text in the same layout is provided in Clerical Script on page 224, in Regular
Script on page 227, and in Cursive Style on page 230. The meaning of individual
characters appears on pages 225–226.
7. Take note of two things in the Small Seal text: (1) the distance between
characters in the same vertical column of text should be smaller than the distance
between the two vertical columns, and (2) the inscriptions and the seal should not
be dangling on the edge of the frame. Rather, they should be balanced with and
form a unified whole with the main text. The composition of calligraphy pieces
will be further illustrated and discussed in Chapter 12.
8. Copy the text on a blank page. You may want to practice writing the characters
first; you may also want to use a pencil to sketch the size and position of each character
on the sheet before you actually write them. On the inscription line, you may simply
put your Chinese name, writing the characters smaller than those in the main text.
115
c h a p t e r n i n e
the Development of
Chinese Calligraphy ii
The Clerical Script
In the previous chapter, we saw that Small Seal Script has a high degree of formal-
ity and strict rules for writing. It is not surprising that such a formal and difficult
script was outlived by another script, called Clerical Script, as a popular way of
writing. After examining the Clerical Script in this chapter, we will learn about
the traditional Chinese dating method, which is still used to date calligraphy
works today.
tHe CLeriCaL sCriPt
As the story goes, in the late Qin, a minister of the First Emperor named Cheng
Miao offended the First Emperor and was thrown into prison. However, he put
his ten years in prison to good use by creating the Clerical Script. In reality, the
development of a new script cannot be the work of only one person. Not only does
the need for a new script arise from social upheaval, a new script also goes through
a long, gradual process from the emergence of the individual stroke features to
maturation and standardization. In this case, research shows that the Clerical Script
was actually developed gradually in the pre-Qin era and matured and prevailed in
c h i n e s e w r i t i n g a n d c a l l i g r a p hy
116
the Han dynasty (roughly when the Roman Empire was f lourishing in the West
from 27 BCE to 395 CE). China, at the height of its development during that time,
was making significant progress in social development, technology, and, most rel-
evant to this discussion, language. This was a time of great prosperity, and the Chi-
nese are so proud of the period that Han 漢 is now used to name both the Chinese
people (漢族 Hànzú, “Han nationality”) and the Chinese language (漢語 Hànyǔ,
“Han language”).
During the Han dynasty, writing instruments were greatly improved. Earlier
when writing on shell and bone, brushes were used to trace characters on hard sur-
faces as a guide before carving. Apparently sometime before and during the Han
dynasty, the use of brushes in true writing became widespread. Also during the
Han, the invention of paper by Cai Lun in 105 CE changed writing completely.1
Before, scribes had to write on hard surfaces such as bone, bamboo, or wooden
slats. Space limitations on these media were severe; one slat, for example, usually
provides enough space for only a single column of text. When paper became avail-
able and writing spaces became much wider, another dimension to the art of writ-
ing was added: the arrangement of characters and columns in a text. In fact, some
scholars today believe that the rounded, slim Small Seal characters were changed
into the f lat, square shape of Clerical Script owing to this increased availability of
writing space, as Clerical Script characters are more stable and easier to manage in
alignment and composition. Seen from this perspective, the popularity of paper
played a role, although indirect, in the development of the Clerical Script.
Meanwhile, the combination of resilient brushes and soft, absorbent paper
allowed more freedom for writers to easily press, lift, and turn and thereby pro-
duce a large variety of strokes. As the brush began to be used to its fullest extent,
the even and wirelike lines of Small Seal gave way to more expressive styles that
featured varied stroke thicknesses. This, in turn, led to the rise of more aesthetic
approaches to calligraphy. Consequently, in the Han dynasty, calligraphy became
an independent form of art and added aesthetic value to its original function of
communication. It began to be used to write poems to describe beautiful and
peaceful scenes, to record philosophical discourse, and to portray an abiding ap-
preciation of nature. All of this was done to produce not only beautiful content,
but also a beautiful form of art. Calligraphy became much more than a form of
written language.
The evolution of the Chinese writing system directly paralleled the develop-
ment of writing techniques. The Han was the time when Chinese characters fi-
nally broke away from pictographic symbols. With the straight lines of the Clerical
Script, writing became much more stylized and abstract. The demand for wider
vocabulary and more written symbols in a fast-growing society also led to a boom
in phonetic borrowing and, later on, in semantic-phonetic compounds. At the
governmental level, Han officials recognized Clerical Script as the first standard
d eve l o p m e n t o f c h i n e s e c a l l i g r a p hy i i : t h e c l e r i c a l s c r i p t
117
script for official use. That recognition brought about increased interest and even
broader promotion.
Clerical Script is so named because the script was first used by clerks; many
examples have been found on official documents such as tax records and deeds. At
first the script was used informally by clerks and officials as a shorthand because
it can be quickly written, but later in the Han its popularity surpassed Small Seal
Script, and it became the official script. Figures 9.1 and 9.2 show two examples of
Clerical Script produced in the Han dynasty.
Figure 9.1. Wooden slats with writing in Clerical script
from the eastern Han dynasty (ca. 200 Ce). [ from fang, lishu
shijiang, p. 37, where no indication of source is given ]
Figure 9.2. Caoquan tablet written in
185 ce (eastern Han dynasty). this is
considered among the best works in
Clerical script. [ from fang, lishu shijiang,
where no indication of source is given ]
The shift from Small Seal to Clerical Script was a major development in the
Chinese writing system. Fundamental changes took place in a number of areas:
1. The thickness of strokes began to vary. The writing displays purposeful
up and down movements of a soft brush tip. When different degrees of pressure
started to be applied to the brush during the writing of a stroke, full-f ledged
brushwork began, involving more finger and wrist movement and techniques.
The most distinctive feature of the Clerical Script is the so-called silkworm’s
head and swallow’s tail (Figure 9.7 below).
2. Curved lines were changed into straight lines and round corners into sharp
c h i n e s e w r i t i n g a n d c a l l i g r a p hy
118
angles. Semicircles and circles disappeared. These alterations not only paved the
way for the formation of the major stroke types, they also set the foundation for
the neat, stable, square shape of Chinese characters.
3. The shape of characters was changed from tall and slim to a short, wide,
horizontally stretched look.
4. For easier and faster writing, lines were changed to dots and multiple dots
were linked into lines.
Figures 9.3, 9.4, and 9.5 show three more examples of the Clerical Script.
It is commonly agreed that Clerical Script, although developed two thousand
years ago, marks the beginning of modern Chinese scripts. The change from
Small Seal to Clerical Script, which is the most significant change in the develop-
ment of the Chinese writing system, is referred to as the “Clerical transformation”
(隶变 lìbiàn). The new script is balanced, simple, strong, and easy to recognize. It
is a style that is full of life. Even today, after more than two millennia of use, many
street signs, billboards, book covers, and notice boards still feature this script be-
cause of its decorative nature.
Figure 9.3. Clerical script by Gui fu (1736–1805)
of the Qing dynasty. [ from fang, lishu shijiang,
p. 8, where no indication of source is given ]
Figure 9.4. Da Zhi Zen Master tablet by shi
Weize, one of the top four masters of the Cleri-
cal style in the tang dynasty. [ from fang, lishu
shijiang, p. 7, where no indication of source is given ]
d eve l o p m e n t o f c h i n e s e c a l l i g r a p hy i i : t h e c l e r i c a l s c r i p t
119
WritinG tHe CLeriCaL sCriPt
THE HORIzONTAL LINE
There are two types of horizontal lines in the Clerical Script: the normal hori-
zontal line and the “wave line.” The normal horizontal line uses basically the
same stroke method as in the Small Seal (Figure 9.6). The writing procedure is as
follows:
1. Start with concealed tip.
2. Change direction and move to the right.
3. At the end of the stroke, reverse and lift.
Remember: do not press down at the beginning or the end. The stroke should
be straight with even thickness.
Figure 9.6. the horizontal line in Clerical script.
Figure 9.5. amitayus sutra by
yuan ruan of the Qing dynasty
(1644–1911). Collection of
the national Palace Museum
(taipei). [ from masterpieces of
chinese calligraphy in the national
palace museum, p. 50. reproduced
by permission from the national
palace museum ]
c h i n e s e w r i t i n g a n d c a l l i g r a p hy
120
THE WAVE LINE
The wave line is one of the most distinctive features of Clerical Script and its most
decorative stroke. In Chinese, its literal name is “silkworm’s head and swallow’s
tail” (蠶頭燕尾 cántóuyànwěi).2 Based on a normal horizontal line, it exaggerates
both the beginning (the silkworm’s head) and the ending (the swallow’s tail) (Fig-
ure 9.7). The writing procedure is as follows:
1. Start with concealed tip, press left and downward, and
pause to make the “silkworm’s head.”
2. Change direction and move to the right, using center tip
and lifting slightly.
3. When approaching the end of the stroke, change to side
tip, press right and downward.
4. Continue moving, but now in a right-upward motion,
gradually lifting the brush; finish the stroke by making the
f laring “swallow’s tail.”
THE VERTICAL LINE
The vertical line also uses the same stroke method as in Small Seal (Figure 9.8).
The writing procedure is as follows:
1. Start with concealed tip.
2. Change direction and move down. Do not press down at
the beginning of the stroke as in Regular Script.
3. At the end, reverse and lift. Both ends should be rounded.
DOWN-LEFT
The down-left stroke in Clerical Script usually starts thin and ends thick, just the
Figure 9.7. the wave line in Clerical script
with “silkworm’s head and swallow’s tail.” Figure 9.8. the vertical line in Clerical script.
d eve l o p m e n t o f c h i n e s e c a l l i g r a p hy i i : t h e c l e r i c a l s c r i p t
121
opposite of the same stroke type written in the Regular Script. In Clerical Script,
the stroke can be written in two ways (see Figure 9.9), with a heavy ending as
on the left or with a light ending as on the right. The writing procedure for the
down-left stroke with heavy ending is as follows:
1. Start with a light beginning (concealed tip optional).
2. Change direction and move down and left, gradually
pressing down. The stroke should be getting thicker as you go.
3. At the end of the stroke, pause, reverse, and lift.
For a down-left stroke with light ending, follow the first two steps described
above. At step (3), lift the brush in an up-left motion.
DOWN-RIGHT
The down-right stroke has an ending similar to the wave line. This stroke is also
very decorative (Figure 9.10). The writing procedure is as follows:
1. Start with concealed tip.
2. Move down-right, gradually pressing down.
3. Near the end, pause and then turn up and right, lifting
the brush gradually as you go.
Note that in Clerical Script, the wave line and the down-right stroke belong
to the same stroke type. Within a single character, only one stroke of this type is
allowed.
Figure 9.9. the down-left slant in Clerical script.
Figure 9.10. the down-right slant in Clerical script.
c h i n e s e w r i t i n g a n d c a l l i g r a p hy
122
TURN
The turn in Clerical Script takes the rounded turn of Small Seal and makes it more
square-angled (Figure 9.11). For a turn that combines a horizontal line and a verti-
cal line, follow these steps:
1. Slow down when you approach the corner.
2. Bring up the brush slightly so that the tip is in the corner.
3. Move down to write the vertical part of the stroke. Do
not press down at the corner as you would in Regular Script.
The same procedure applies to other types of corners.
DOTS
As a stroke type, dots have the largest number of variant forms, so be sure to
observe your models carefully and practice often. The ways to write these dots
should be self-explanatory (Figure 9.12).
Note that there is no hook in Clerical Script.
As can be seen from earlier examples in this chapter, Clerical Script can be
written in different styles and f lavors. Only the most general descriptions are
given here. Learners aiming at proficiency in this script are advised to choose a
model and study its specific features and techniques.
Figure 9.11. the turn in Clerical script.
Figure 9.12. Dots in Clerical script.
d eve l o p m e n t o f c h i n e s e c a l l i g r a p hy i i : t h e c l e r i c a l s c r i p t
123
CHinese CULtUre (4):
tHe traDitionaL CHinese DatinG MetHoD
In Chinese calligraphy, the traditional dating method is used to record the date of a
work. This system is quite different from the dating method used in the West.
In the Gregorian calendar, years are dated from the birth of Jesus Christ, so that
the year 2008 is the 2,008th year after his birth. This method represents a linear
perception of time, in which time proceeds in a straight line from the past to the
present and then on into the future.
In traditional China, dating methods were cyclic. That is, time was recorded
as following a pattern that repeats again and again. Dating in calligraphy mainly
concerns the recording of the year. Two cyclic systems are used to refer to years:
a sixty-year cycle and a twelve-year cycle. In the following two sections, the two
systems and how they correspond to each other will be described. In traditional
China, most people were able to do the conversion between the two cyclic systems
by heart. Since the dawn of the modern age, many, especially modern generations,
have lost this ability. In the art world even today, the sixty-year cycle is still com-
monly used to date artworks. Thus knowledge of how the system works is essential
for both the appreciation and the composition of calligraphy works. For your refer-
ence, Figure 9.14 below shows how the Western calendar years, the Chinese sixty-
year terms, and the twelve-year cycle correspond to one another.
THE SIXTY-YEAR CYCLE
The sixty-year cycle is based on the combination of two sets of segments: Heavenly
Stems (天干 tiāngàn) and Earthly Branches (地支 dìzhī ). This method of dating is
referred to as the “stem-branch” system (干支紀年法 gànzhī jìniánfǎ ).
The Heavenly Stems consist of ten segments, each with a Chinese name. For
illustration and easy recognition, the ten segments are represented here using the
roman letters A through J to correspond to the Chinese terms. The pronunciation
of these terms is indicated on the third line of the following illustration.
A B C D E F G H I J
甲 乙 丙 丁 戊 己 庚 辛 壬 癸
jiǎ yı̌ bı̌ng dīng wù jı̌ gēng xīn rén guı̌
The Earthly Branches consist of twelve members, represented here by the Ara-
bic numerals 1 through 12. The corresponding Chinese terms and pronunciation
are shown below:
c h i n e s e w r i t i n g a n d c a l l i g r a p hy
124
1 2 3 4 5 6 7 8 9 10 11 12
子 丑 寅 卯 辰 巳 午 未 申 酉 戌 亥
zı̌ chǒu yín mǎo chén sì wǔ wèi shēn yǒu xŪ hài
Figure 9.13 shows how the two sets of segments are combined. The stem seg-
ments take turns combining with the branch segments, both in a cyclic fashion.
Thus “A” combined with “1” produces the term 甲子 jiǎzı̌. Similarly, “B” com-
bines with “2” to form 乙丑 yı̌chǒu. After “J” is paired with “10” (producing 癸
酉guı̌yǒu), “A” has to pair with “11” (甲戌 jiǎxū) and “B” with “12” (乙亥 yı̌hài).
Then “C” pairs with “1” (丙子 bı̌ngzı̌) in the second cycle of the branch segments.
The pairings then continue, with “D” paired with “2” and “E” with “3,” and so
forth. Since the lowest common multiple of 10 and 12 is 60, a complete combina-
tion of the two sets of segments forms a cycle of sixty years. In the end, when “J”
(癸 guı̌ ) meets “12” (亥 hài ), the sixty-year cycle is complete. A new cycle starts
the following year. During the sixty years, the stem segments are used six times and
the branch segments are used five times. Figure 9.14 displays three sixty-year cycles
between the years of 1864 and 2043.
According to this system, jı̌choǔ is the Chinese stem-branch term for the year
2009. The last time this term was used was sixty years ago for the year 1949, and the
next time will be sixty years later for the year 2069. In ancient times, short human life
spans made it unlikely that any particular term would be repeated within an individu-
al’s lifetime. To prevent confusion and to identify which cycle an actual term is refer-
ring to, the title of the ruling emperor is also used. For example, the calligraphy piece
(partially shown) in Figure 9.15 is dated Jiājìng (嘉靖), rénchén (壬辰), summer (夏),
A11 a11 A9 A7 A5 A3
B2 B12 B10 B8 B6 B4
C3 C12 C11 C9 C7 C5
D4 D2 D12 D10 D8 D6
E5 E3 E13 E11 E9 E7
F6 F4 F2 F12 F10 F8
G7 G5 G3 G14 G11 G9
H8 H6 H4 H2 H12 H10
I9 I7 I5 I3 I15 I11
J10 J8 J6 J4 J2 J12
Figure 9.13. the Chinese dating method: the sixty-year cycle.
1864-1923
1.甲子 1864 13.丙子 1876 25.戊子 1888 37.庚子 1900 49.壬子 1912 mouse 鼠
2.乙丒 1865 14.丁丒 1877 26.己丒 1889 38.辛丒 1901 50.癸丒 1913 ox 牛
3.丙寅 1866 15.戊寅 1878 27.庚寅 1890 39.壬寅 1902 51.甲寅 1914 tiger 虎
4.丁卯 1867 16.己卯 1879 28.辛卯 1891 40.癸卯 1903 52.乙卯 1915 rabbit 兔
5.戊辰 1868 17.庚辰 1880 29.壬辰 1892 41.甲辰 1904 53.丙辰 1916 dragon 龍
6.己巳 1869 18.辛巳 1881 30.癸巳 1893 42.已巳 1905 54.丁巳 1917 snake 蛇
7.庚午 1870 19.壬午 1882 31.甲午 1894 43.丙午 1906 55.戊午 1918 horse 馬
8.辛未 1871 20.癸未 1883 32.乙未 1895 44.丁未 1907 56.己未 1919 sheep 羊
9.壬申 1872 21.甲申 1884 33.丙申 1896 45.戊申 1908 57.庚申 1920 monkey 猴
10.癸酉 1873 22.乙酉 1885 34.丁酉 1897 46.己酉 1909 58.辛酉 1921 rooster 雞
11.甲戌 1874 23.丙戌 1886 35.戊戌 1898 47.庚戌 1910 59.壬戌 1922 dog 狗
12.乙亥 1875 24.丁亥 1887 36.己亥 1899 48.辛亥 1911 60.癸亥 1923 boar 豬
1924-1983
1.甲子 1924 13.丙子 1936 25.戊子 1948 37.庚子 1960 49.壬子 1972 mouse 鼠
2.乙丒 1925 14.丁丒 1937 26.己丒 1949 38.辛丒 1961 50.癸丒 1973 ox 牛
3.丙寅 1926 15.戊寅 1938 27.庚寅 1950 39.壬寅 1962 51.甲寅 1974 tiger 虎
4.丁卯 1927 16.己卯 1939 28.辛卯 1951 40.癸卯 1963 52.乙卯 1975 rabbit 兔
5.戊辰 1928 17.庚辰 1940 29.壬辰 1952 41.甲辰 1964 53.丙辰 1976 dragon 龍
6.己巳 1929 18.辛巳 1941 30.癸巳 1953 42.已巳 1965 54.丁巳 1977 snake 蛇
7.庚午 1930 19.壬午 1942 31.甲午 1954 43.丙午 1966 55.戊午 1978 horse 馬
8.辛未 1931 20.癸未 1943 32.乙未 1955 44.丁未 1967 56.己未 1979 sheep 羊
9.壬申 1932 21.甲申 1944 33.丙申 1956 45.戊申 1968 57.庚申 1980 monkey 猴
10.癸酉 1933 22.乙酉 1945 34.丁酉 1957 46.己酉 1969 58.辛酉 1981 rooster 雞
11.甲戌 1934 23.丙戌 1946 35.戊戌 1958 47.庚戌 1970 59.壬戌 1982 dog 狗
12.乙亥 1935 24.丁亥 1947 36.己亥 1959 48.辛亥 1971 60.癸亥 1983 boar 豬
1984-2043
1.甲子 1984 13.丙子 1996 25.戊子 2008 37.庚子 2020 49.壬子 2032 mouse 鼠
2.乙丒 1985 14.丁丒 1997 26.己丒 2009 38.辛丒 2021 50.癸丒 2033 ox 牛
3.丙寅 1986 15.戊寅 1998 27.庚寅 2010 39.壬寅 2022 51.甲寅 2034 tiger 虎
4.丁卯 1987 16.己卯 1999 28.辛卯 2011 40.癸卯 2023 52.乙卯 2035 rabbit 兔
5.戊辰 1988 17.庚辰 2000 29.壬辰 2012 41.甲辰 2024 53.丙辰 2036 dragon 龍
6.己巳 1989 18.辛巳 2001 30.癸巳 2013 42.已巳 2025 54.丁巳 2037 snake 蛇
7.庚午 1990 19.壬午 2002 31.甲午 2014 43.丙午 2026 55.戊午 2038 horse 馬
8.辛未 1991 20.癸未 2003 32.乙未 2015 44.丁未 2027 56.己未 2039 sheep 羊
9.壬申 1992 21.甲申 2004 33.丙申 2016 45.戊申 2028 57.庚申 2040 monkey 猴
10.癸酉 1993 22.乙酉 2005 34.丁酉 2017 46.己酉 2029 58.辛酉 2041 rooster 雞
11.甲戌 1994 23.丙戌 2006 35.戊戌 2018 47.庚戌 2030 59.壬戌 2042 dog 狗
12.乙亥 1995 24.丁亥 2007 36.己亥 2019 48.辛亥 2031 60.癸亥 2043 boar 豬
60-year cycle aND the aNimal SigNS
Figure 9.14. three sixty-year cycles (1864–2043).
c h i n e s e w r i t i n g a n d c a l l i g r a p hy
126
fifth month (五月), twelfth day (十二日) (starting from the third line and then the
second line from the left).
As has been mentioned, units of time are always arranged in Chinese from the
most general to the most specific. In Figure 9.15, the reign title Jiājìng 嘉靖 comes
first because it is the name of a Ming dynasty emperor who ruled between 1522 and
1567. The specific year of the work, rénchén 壬辰 (which corresponds to the year
1532), comes second, followed by the season, xià 夏 (summer), and then the month
and the day. Thus, we know that this piece was written on the twelfth day of the
fifth month in the summer of 1532 in the Jiajing era.
Figure 9.16 shows the end of a piece written by an instructor of the Hanlin
Academy. The writing is dated to the rule of the Kangxi emperor (康熙) of the
Qing dynasty, who reigned from 1662 to 1721. The year 辛酉 xīnyǒu was the twen-
tieth year of the Kangxi era, or 1681. The work was done in the twelfth month of
the year, which is also referred to as 嘉平 jiāpíng.3
In late-nineteenth- and early-twentieth-century Chinese history, many impor-
tant events are referred to using stem-branch terms. In the following examples,
the first two characters are the stem-branch terms indicating the year; the last two
characters record the nature of the events.
甲午戰爭 Jiǎwǔ Zhànzhēng: the Sino-Japanese War, which
started in 1894
戊戌變法 Wùxū Biànfǎ: the Reform Movement of 1898
庚子賠款 Gēngzı̌ Péikuǎn: Boxer Indemnity (1900)
辛亥革命 Xīnhài Gémìng: the 1911 Revolution
Figure 9.15. Chinese traditional dating method (Ming dynasty).
↑ ↑
d eve l o p m e n t o f c h i n e s e c a l l i g r a p hy i i : t h e c l e r i c a l s c r i p t
127
The Chinese adopted the Western calendar in 1912. The stem-branch terms are
now mainly used in art and for the Chinese New Year celebration.
THE TWELVE-YEAR CYCLE
In the stem-branch system, the twelve branch terms correspond to another cyclic
system, the Chinese zodiac, which uses twelve animal signs. They are, in order,
mouse, ox, tiger, rabbit, dragon, snake, horse, sheep, monkey, rooster, dog, and
boar. The correspondence of the two systems is shown in Figure 9.14, where you
can see that the year with the branch term 子 zı̌ would always be the year of the
mouse, and the year with the branch term 丒 chǒu would always be the year of the
ox, and so on.
In China, the animal signs have a social function in finding out a person’s age.
A common practice is to ask a person’s animal sign rather than his or her numerical
age. By so doing, that person’s age can be calculated indirectly. Often, the purpose
of this exercise is to identify seniority among friends and acquaintances and to be-
have accordingly. In popular culture, each animal sign is also linked with certain
character traits. For example, people born in the year of the dog are said to have a
Figure 9.16. Chinese traditional dating method (Kangxi era). Dated (the leftmost line on the right leaf) the
twelfth month of xı̄nǒu 辛酉, twentieth year of the Kāngxı̄ era. the last leaf is signed “respectfully of-
fered by Hànlín (翰林) academy instructor Gao shiqi (高士奇).”
c h i n e s e w r i t i n g a n d c a l l i g r a p hy
128
deep sense of loyalty; they are honest and compatible with people born in the years
of the horse, tiger, and rabbit. In comparison, those born in the year of the dragon
are healthy and energetic. Although they may be short-tempered and stubborn, they
tend to be soft-hearted. They get along with snakes, monkeys, and roosters. Such
information is used to find out a person’s potential personal traits.
In fact, the stem-branch system and the Chinese zodiac, both used in time-
keeping, reflect a comprehensive Chinese worldview that is serenely cyclic. Accord-
ing to this view, everything in the world—days and nights, fortune and misfortune,
life and death—comes and goes without beginning or end. People, like anything
else in nature, are part of this gigantic system. The philosophy behind this view, that
is, the Chinese belief that everything in the world goes in cycles, will be further
discussed in Chapter 13.
DisCUssion QUestions anD WritinG PraCtiCe
1. What are the major characteristics of Clerical Script?
2. Compare the horizontal line in Regular Script and the wave line in
Clerical Script. Describe the steps in writing each respectively and discuss the
differences.
3. Both Clerical Script and Regular Script are used in modern writing. How
are they used differently?
4. Practice writing the strokes on page 222 and characters on page 223 in
Appendix 1.
5. Observe the writing and the layout of “A journey of thousands of miles
starts from the first step” in Clerical Script, and copy it on a blank sheet. You
may want to practice writing the characters first and make a planning sketch
with a pencil before writing.
7. Use Figure 9.14 to identify the Chinese term for the current year, and
practice writing the term in the Regular Script.
8. Pick three people you know. Find out their birth years, and write the
Chinese stem-branch terms for those years and their animal signs.
129
c h a p t e r t e n
the Development of
Chinese Calligraphy iii
The Regular Script
Two periods in the history of Chinese calligraphy were most crucial to script de-
velopment. One was the Han dynasty (206 BCE–220 CE), during which Clerical
Script was developed. In the previous chapter, we saw that Clerical Script con-
tributed crucial features to modern Chinese writing and that it allowed Chinese
calligraphy to become a true art. The other period, the Tang dynasty (618–907),
was another era of great cultural prosperity. During the Tang the Regular Script
reached its maturity and produced a large number of calligraphy masters.
In Chapters 3 to 7, you learned major features of the Regular Script. You have
also been practicing the script in actual writing. This chapter examines Regular
Script further and compares it with Clerical Script. It also looks at the lives and
works of some of the greatest masters of Regular Script, who significantly inf lu-
enced the development of Chinese calligraphy.
tHe reGULar sCriPt
Regular Script is based on Clerical Script, both in individual strokes and in how
individual elements are combined. Although it is still an unsettled issue exactly
c h i n e s e w r i t i n g a n d c a l l i g r a p hy
130
when the Regular Script was developed, most would agree that it was intro-
duced during the Han dynasty, popularized in the Wei and Jin periods, and finally
reached its maturity in the great Tang era.1
Regular Script is, as the name suggests, “regular” in that it features distin-
guished and refined strokes and stroke types. Each stroke is placed slowly and
carefully; the brush is lifted from the paper at the end of each stroke. Characters,
square in shape, have a well-defined internal structure. It is a standardized script
with prescribed techniques in three major areas: brush method (how to use the
fingers and wrist to move the brush and how to take advantage of various ink ef-
fects), character method (ways of managing the internal structure of characters and
making them artistically more appealing), and composition method (how to put
components of a piece together to maintain good balance and coordination, and
to create artistic effects). The result is a precise form of calligraphy written in a
serious manner, with a firm and solid structure. The script embodies fundamental
principles from which further styles can be extracted. As a kai or “model” script,
it leaves little room for artistic license or acceptable variation. Owing to this in-
f lexible regularity, it is also called zhēnshū 真書, “True Script.” All these factors
make Regular Script the easiest script to read and the script that beginners learn
to write first.
tHe reGULar anD CLeriCaL sCriPts CoMPareD
Figure 10.1 presents a visual comparison of the Regular and Clerical scripts. It is
immediately apparent that the two scripts convey different feelings and tastes. The
most obvious differences are found in their stroke shapes. While Clerical Script
strokes are relatively heavy, those in Regular Script are generally more extended
and smoothed out. The Clerical Script convention of “silkworm’s head and swal-
low’s tail” is particularly distinctive. Also, in Clerical Script, there is no “hook.”
Note in Figure 10.1 how the hooks at the bottom of the Regular Script characters
好雨 hǎoyǔ, “good rain,” are written in Clerical Script. Horizontal lines in Cleri-
cal Script are f lat, although some curl up slightly, as in Figure 10.1. By contrast,
clerical VS. regular
好雨 好雨 [good rain]
吉祥 吉祥 [auspicious and propitious]
Figure 10.1. Clerical and regular scripts.
d eve l o p m e n t o f c h i n e s e c a l l i g r a p hy i i i : t h e re g u l a r s c r i p t
131
horizontal lines in Regular Script generally slope upwards and lack the final tilt at
the end that characterizes Clerical Script.
The overall shapes of the characters in these two scripts contribute to the
feel they convey. Characters in Clerical Script are wide and short; they convey a
sense of solemnity and antiquity. Those in Regular Script are square and have the
look of standing tall and more at ease. Regular Script became popular later than
Clerical Script; it preserves the precision and modulation of line width in Clerical
Script but is less formal and heavy.
Another difference is the unchallenged supremacy of Regular Script for offi-
cial use in modern times. Its development and perfection during the Tang dynasty
not only brought Chinese writing to an age of stability and maturity, it provided
calligraphy with a full set of rules and standards upon which other styles are based
and that they elaborate. Since the invention of Regular Script, the study of cal-
ligraphy has emphasized the interpretation of its rules and standards, and how to
add personality to the rules and standards in writing.
Masters of tHe reGULar sCriPt
The Tang dynasty produced a large number of calligraphers unmatched in any
other historical period. In this section, we examine the lives and works of the four
most distinguished masters of Regular Script. We will first look at Wang Xizhi,
whose writing in four major script types serves as models in this book. We will
then look at Yan Zhenqing and Liu Gongquan, two other names familiar to every
student of calligraphy in China. We will compare the writing of these three great
calligraphers, all in Regular Script, to see how their personal styles differ. Finally,
we will look at Zhao Ji, another important and interesting figure in the history
of calligraphy who is best known as Emperor Huizong of the Song. His work and
distinct style are mentioned throughout this book.
WANG XIzHI
Wáng Xīzhī 王羲之 (303–361), the “calligraphy sage,” is the most famous of all
Chinese calligraphers. His work represents the summit of the art. Wang Xizhi
is to Chinese calligraphy what Beethoven was to music, Shakespeare to English
literature, and Confucius to Chinese culture.
Wang Xizhi lived earlier than the other calligraphers discussed in this chapter,
in the Jin dynasty (265–420). During his time, there were three major popular
styles of calligraphy: Regular Script, Running Style, and Cursive Style. Wang
Xizhi excelled in all three, although he was best known for his Running Style.
The Running and Cursive styles—as well as Wang Xizhi’s best work—will be
discussed in the next chapter; here, suffice it to say that the Running Style falls
c h i n e s e w r i t i n g a n d c a l l i g r a p hy
132
between Regular and Cursive in terms of writing speed and stroke linkage. When
carefully written with distinguishable strokes, it is Regular Script; when swiftly
written with indistinguishable strokes, it is Cursive Script. There is no doubt that
Wang Xizhi became the greatest master of the Running Style because he had also
mastered the Regular Script; the former was firmly built on the foundation of the
latter. His natural, unrestrained, elegant, and refined writing in Regular Script is
considered “perfect beauty.”2
Wang Xizhi was born to a wealthy family (his father was provincial governor)
in present-day Linyi, Shandong Province. He began to practice calligraphy at
the age of seven under the tutelage of his father and the well-known calligrapher
Madame Wei Shuo. At first he seemed to have no potential; no one believed that
this slow, dull child would become a calligraphy genius. However, his diligence
and concentration allowed him to overcome his lack of innate talent. As a child,
even when he was walking, he would often ponder the structure of characters and
practice writing with his fingers on his arm, legs, and body. The story goes that
he would rinse his brush and ink stone in a pond outside his home after every
practice session—and he practiced so much that the water in the pond eventually
turned black! This pond was subsequently named Xiyan (Rinsing Inkstone) Pool
and can still be seen today at Wang Xizhi’s former residence in Linyi. Wang Xi-
zhi exemplifies diligence to students of calligraphy and commands respect for his
patience and hard work.
Even during Wang Xizhi’s lifetime, his writing and signature were beyond
value. He was especially favored by the Emperor Taizong of the Tang, who paid
extremely high prices to collect Wang’s writing samples. The emperor also or-
dered court officials to imitate Wang’s writing until it finally became a fashion,
which has lasted up to the present day.
Wang Xizhi passed his talent on to his sons, particularly his seventh son, Wang
Xianzhi, whose reputation at times surpassed his father’s. The works of both father
and son, now known as the “Two Wangs,” are among those most treasured in the
tradition of Chinese calligraphy.
After Wang Xizhi, in the Tang dynasty (618–907), Chinese calligraphy at-
tained its full prominence as Regular Script matured and perfected. A number
of well-known Tang calligraphers, including Yan Zhenqing and Liu Gongquan,
emerged with individual styles in Regular Script.
YAN zHENQING
Yán Zhēnqīng 顏真卿 (709–785) was a court official and successful military com-
mander in the Tang dynasty as well as a famous calligrapher whose inf luence on
the development of calligraphy proved to be as significant as Wang Xizhi’s. Yan,
who came from a poor family, was schooled mainly by relatives. Later he passed
d eve l o p m e n t o f c h i n e s e c a l l i g r a p hy i i i : t h e re g u l a r s c r i p t
133
the imperial examination and started his career as a successful official in supervi-
sory military positions.
When Yan Zhenqing was young and his family was too poor to afford the
proper training materials of brush and paper, it was said that his early training
consisted of smearing mud on blank walls. Nonetheless, he distinguished himself
early in writing by first learning the Wang Style and tightly composing its char-
acters with vibrantly modulated strokes and crisply pointed ends. Later, his style
changed to include much less modulation in stroke thickness and more blunted
ends. As a result, his characters became more plain and severe rather than highly
articulated. They have a lofty appearance as of a marshal and are as majestic as a
sovereign ruler.
Gradually Yan Zhenqing became a true master of calligraphy. He had a great
ability to absorb what he had learned and to use it in his own way. For example, he
made drastic changes to Wang Xizhi’s elegant Regular Script characters by add-
ing strength and vigor. He imparted maximum power to each stroke with vertical
lines that were generally much thicker than the horizontal lines. Not only did his
characters begin to expand internally and feature less modulated strokes, the use
of the concealed-tip technique made the entry points of his strokes disappear. The
result was the most original style of all the Tang calligraphers: firm, sturdy, broad,
and muscular. His emphasis on strength, boldness, and grandness brought Chinese
calligraphy to a new realm (Figure 10.2).
Figure 10.2. the yan Zhenqing style.
c h i n e s e w r i t i n g a n d c a l l i g r a p hy
134
Before the mechanical printing press was invented, books in China were du-
plicated and preserved mainly by two means: copying by hand or carving on
stone. The different functions, materials, and workmanship of these methods pro-
duced characters with markedly different features. Interestingly, Wang Xizhi’s
graceful, elegant style was used for hand-copying and looks best on paper, while
Yan’s mighty, majestic characters were ideal for stone carving—especially when
seen from a distance. Therefore, Yan was often asked to write out texts to be
engraved on public monuments. His earliest surviving work, the Prabhutaratna
Pagoda Stele (752 CE), can still be seen today in the Forest of Steles in Xi’an.
In Chinese culture, an artist’s success is often associated with his moral stan-
dards and personal conduct. In calligraphy, subjective elements such as scholastic
achievements, personality, and moral virtues are all considered important in artis-
tic achievement. Yan Zhengqing’s life story provides an example. In the military
realm, Yan Zhenqing was well known for his righteousness and loyalty to his
country. After a successful career as a military commander, he retired but was
recalled to duty to help crush the An Lushan rebellion. After a successful mili-
tary campaign, he was appointed minister of law, but his outspokenness against
government corruption and his unbendable character offended treacherous high-
er-ranking court officials and eventually cost him his life. His heavy characters
display a grandeur and seriousness of expression that is seen as a perfect ref lection
of his personality, values, and morals. His style, later known as the Yan Style, has
greatly inf luenced calligraphers of later generations and has been copied by cal-
ligraphy students to the present day.
LIU GONGQUAN
Liǔ Gōngquán 柳公權 (778–865), another master calligrapher of the Tang dynasty,
enjoys fame and respect equal to that of Yan Zhenqing. In his childhood, Liu
Gongquan also worked diligently and became knowledgeable about literature and
Confucianism. After passing the national civil service examinations in his early
twenties, he became a government official.
Liu Gongquan studied the calligraphy of the Two Wangs, Yan Zhenqing,
and other earlier masters. In sharp contrast to Yan’s bold, imposing strokes and
square characters that embodied the heavy trend of the time, Liu developed a
style with bony yet firm strokes and characters. Another difference between Yan’s
and Liu’s styles is that Yan’s characters were arranged modestly, with spacious
center portions and tight outer strokes, while Liu’s characters had strokes tightly
knitted in the middle and stretched out on all sides. It is said that, in order to
develop his style, Liu dissected animals to study their anatomy and observed f ly-
ing wild geese and swimming fish. He was probably most inf luenced by the sight
of deer on the run, which he considered thin, light, and skeletal. His writing,
d eve l o p m e n t o f c h i n e s e c a l l i g r a p hy i i i : t h e re g u l a r s c r i p t
135
later known as Liu Style, is distinguished by “bony” strokes and strict, rigorous
structures (Figure 10.3).
Liu also dealt with the theoretical aspect of writing and the abstract and spiri-
tual side of the art. He advocated cultivating a relationship between the mind
and the brush, the need to visualize the final product before its creation, and the
importance of involving well-cultivated spiritual abilities beyond simple imagina-
tion. Liu was not as active in government as Yan Zhenqing; rather, he was a devout
Buddhist. His Buddhist practice surely inf luenced his philosophy of both life and
calligraphy, particularly his emphasis on the necessity of forming a strong moral
character as a basis for artistic creation. Once, when asked by Emperor Muzong
of the Tang how to write upright characters, Liu responded that it depends on the
mind of the writer. When a person sets the purpose of his life upright, he will be
able to write upright characters. Since then, Liu’s saying “An upright mind for an
upright brush” (心正笔正 xīn-zhèng-bı̌-zhèng) has been central to the Chinese em-
phasis on forming a strong moral character as the basis for artistic creation.
Although different in style, both Yan and Liu have long been admired and
Figure 10.3. the Liu Gongquan style.
c h i n e s e w r i t i n g a n d c a l l i g r a p hy
136
followed by calligraphers and calligraphy learners not only for their writing, but
also for their morality. They are often referred to as the famed “Yan-Liu.” For
students training in calligraphy, copybooks in both the Yan and the Liu styles are
still widely used and valued.
Figure 10.4 is a comparison of the three personal styles of Wang Xizhi, Yan
Zhenqing, and Liu Gongquan, all in Regular Script. Clearly, each style carries its
own subtle characteristics and artistic f lavor. The Liu Style reveals thinner lines
that ref lect his strong character, while the Yan Style looks heavier and fuller.
Among the three, the Wang Style is the most relaxed and graceful. Beginning
learners may choose any of these (or styles of other calligraphy masters) as a model
according to personal taste and preference. Switching between styles is generally
not advised.
EMPEROR HUIzONG OF THE SONG
Song Huizong (宋徽宗 Sòng Huīzōng, 1082–1135), whose personal name was
Zhào Jí 赵佶, was exceedingly significant in calligraphy and painting although
an infamous emperor. What intrigued Huizong the most was fine art. He honed
Figure 10.4. “everlasting Happiness”: a comparison of the Wang,
yan, and Liu styles.
d eve l o p m e n t o f c h i n e s e c a l l i g r a p hy i i i : t h e re g u l a r s c r i p t
137
his skill in poetry, painting, calligraphy, and music and, as a dedicated art con-
noisseur, filled his palace with works of art and musical instruments. Most of
the members of his court were artists as well. His hobbies included architecture,
garden design, and Chinese medicine; he was a tea enthusiast and wrote treatises
on the Song dynasty’s tea ceremonies, which are considered the most complete
depiction of tea traditions recorded in Chinese history. His most significant and
well-known contributions were to Chinese calligraphy. He even developed his
own style, called Slender Gold, illustrated in Figures 10.5 and 10.6.
Slender Gold, so named because it has a twisted quality, like gold filament,
is characterized by thin, sharp strokes and sharp turns and stops. The characters
are angular, with chiseled corners. The ending of the horizontal strokes is also
Figure 10.5. slender Gold by emperor Huizong of the song dynasty.
[ from nan and ji, long zhi wu, where no indication of source is given ]
Figure 10.6. a close-up of emperor Huizong’s slender Gold.
c h i n e s e w r i t i n g a n d c a l l i g r a p hy
138
unique in that the brush clearly goes back in the opposite direction. The size and
shape of the characters is uniform, as in Regular Script, but the strokes are long,
straight, and thin, creating a sharp, wispy look. Some critics believe that Slender
Gold looks too delicate and feminine, and see this as a ref lection of weaknesses in
an emperor that eventually led to the tragic end of his rule.
Huizong also contributed significantly to painting and is well known for his
gongbi, a meticulous style of Chinese traditional painting that uses fine, delicate
brush strokes. Both his calligraphy and his paintings were characterized by ex-
treme brush control. His paintings were often accompanied by poems he wrote in
Slender Gold. Huizong also established and directed art academies to train court
calligraphers and artists.
When Huizong became emperor, he inherited conf licts that he was unable
to resolve effectively. He used art as an escape from the pressures of political life
and spent most of his time and the country’s assets on amassing large collections
of calligraphy, paintings, musical instruments, and other forms of art, as well as
furthering his own skills. Living an extravagant lifestyle in a lavish palace, he
indulged in amusements and spent little time or effort developing foreign policy
or building up an army. The weakness of the Song military was only too appar-
ent. When enemies attacked in 1126, Huizong panicked and abdicated. He died
an exile at the age of fifty-two. He left a unique style of calligraphy that is still
widely used today.
The Tang dynasty was the golden age of Chinese calligraphy as it was the golden
age of Chinese literature, especially poetry. The maturation of the firm, dignified,
graceful Regular Script marked the final stage of the development of Chinese
script. With the perfection and standardization of Regular Script, the potential for
the development of Chinese characters seems to have been exhausted. During the
1,100 years from the Tang dynasty to the present day, Regular Script has held an
uncontested status both in calligraphy and as the standard script for official use.
No new scripts have been invented; later writers have only developed individual
styles.
DisCUssion QUestions anD WritinG PraCtiCe
1. Compare the three characters meaning “dragon” below and discuss how to
write them differently in the three different scripts.
2. Compare the character 書 shū, “book,” written in the Yan and Liu styles
and say as much as you can about their differences.
3. Practice writing the Regular Script characters in the text “A journey of
thousands of miles starts from the first step” on pages 225-226 in Appendix 1.
4. Practice the characters on page 228 in Appendix 1. The structure of these
d eve l o p m e n t o f c h i n e s e c a l l i g r a p hy i i i : t h e re g u l a r s c r i p t
139
characters is more complex than those you have practiced before in the Regular
Script. Since they are characters of common interest, they often appear in cal-
ligraphy pieces. Page 229 is a typical example of the character 福 fú, “blessings,”
which is often put at the entrance to homes, especially during Chinese New
Year celebrations.
5. Practice writing the stem-branch term for the current year in the Regular
Script.
140
c h a p t e r e l eve n
the Development of
Chinese Calligraphy iv
The Running and Cursive Styles
The scripts described in the previous chapters are all written stroke by stroke.
The Running and Cursive styles, in contrast, are executed with linking between
strokes. They are faster ways of writing, with more f luidity and freedom of ex-
pression. Of the two, the Cursive Style has the higher degree of stroke continu-
ity. For this reason, Running Style is often referred to as “semicursive.” Analysis
shows that both the Running and Cursive styles developed on the basis of Clerical
Script. In modern times, however, they are perceived and understood in relation
to Regular Script. It is said that Regular, Running, and Cursive styles are like the
three stages of standing, walking, and running.
The Running and Cursive styles also differ from Regular Script in that no
standards exist for their writing. They are not taught in schools as major, formal
scripts, nor are they used in official documentation. To distinguish them from the
formal scripts, they are referred to as “styles.”
d eve l o p m e n t o f c h i n e s e c a l l i g r a p hy iv : t h e r u n n i n g a n d c u r s ive s t y l e s
141
tHe rUnninG styLe
Compared to Regular Script, Running Style is less formal, freer, and sketchier.
As the name suggests, it departs from the prescribed features and strict formality
of earlier scripts by increasing the speed of writing. The faster speed creates not
only kinetics but also softened corner angles and different linkages between some
(but not all) strokes. Sometimes shortcuts can be taken for faster execution, even
at the expense of normal stroke order. This speedy and spontaneous style, like a
gentle breeze, breathes life into characters and grants them grace of movement
and rhythm.
DEGREES OF LINKING
The examples in Figure 11.1 highlight a distinct feature of the Running Style,
the linking between successive strokes. The result is a continuous f low of energy
until an intentional stop occurs. Linkages are executed in different ways. Some
are overtly linking lines, such as the one between the first two strokes of 三
sān, “three,” 文 wén, “text,” and 大 dà, “big.” Sometimes strokes are not overtly
linked, but there is a sensed correspondence indicated by the direction in which
the brush is moving; for example, the last two strokes of 三 “three,” 文, “text,” 大,
“big,” 只 zhı̌, “only,” and all three strokes of 小 xiǎo, “small.” In these examples,
the strokes taper off in the direction of the next stroke so that the preceding stroke
brings out the following one. Although the strokes are not overtly linked, the
momentum is there. Whether and how to link strokes are decisions for the writer.
However, when two strokes are linked, a distinction should be made between the
actual stroke lines and the linking lines.
STROKE CONSOLIDATION AND CHARACTER SIMPLIFICATION
Writing with increased speed enables one to combine strokes and simplify char-
acters. Beginners should note that combination and simplification are done by
Regular Script: 三 文 大 只 小
Running Script: 三 文 大 只 小
“three” “text” “big” “only” “small”
Figure 11.1. Different linkages in running style.
c h i n e s e w r i t i n g a n d c a l l i g r a p hy
142
convention so that legibility can be preserved. As Figure 11.2 shows, simplifica-
tion can be accomplished by changing lines into dots and dots into lines; strokes
may also be combined.
The character in (1) in Figure 11.2 is yı̌, “according to.” The first stroke in
Regular Script, a vertical line with a right-up tick, is simplified into a dot in Run-
ning Style, which is linked with the second stroke (also a dot). The third stroke (a
down-left) and the fourth (a long dot) in Regular Script are linked into one stroke
in Running Style. The result is the same character with a totally different look.
Again, such linking and simplification has to follow certain conventions. That is,
every person writing this character in the Running Style should link and simplify
Regular — 以 的 如 和 福 相
Running — 以 的 如 和 福 林
(1) (2) (3) (4) (5) (6)
the strokes in the same way so that the correspondence between the two scripts
can be used for decoding. This is very much like a shorthand in any language.
Similarly, in the left component of the character 的 and 的 (de, a possessive mark-
er) in (2), the two horizontal lines (one inside of the box and the other the bottom
closure) are linked and simplified into an upward line linking with the right com-
ponent. In (3) 如 rú, “as if,” the right side, a box 口 composed of three strokes in
Regular Script, is written in Running Style with only one curved stroke. In the
last three characters in (4) through (6), 和 hé, “harmony,” 福 fú, “blessing,” and 林
lín, “woods,” the last two strokes on the left side of the Regular Script characters
are a down-left stroke and a dot. They are simplified in roughly the same way into
a down-left linked with a right-up tick, which is also linked with the component
on the right side. These are all conventionalized ways of stroke linking and sim-
plification so that characters in Running Style remain legible. An important part
of learning the Running (and the Cursive) Style is to learn these conventions.
There are, however, complications. The conventions may include more than
one way to simplify a character or more than one level of simplification. A com-
parison of (3) and (4) in Figure 11.2 shows two different ways of writing the box
Figure 11.2. Comparison of regular script and the running style: stroke linking and character
simplification.
d eve l o p m e n t o f c h i n e s e c a l l i g r a p hy iv : t h e r u n n i n g a n d c u r s ive s t y l e s
143
口 in Running Style; in (3) there is apparently a higher degree of linking and sim-
plification. Ultimately, whether and how to simplify a character is a decision for
the writer to make in writing. Such choices enlarge the inventory of the different
ways a character can be written. It is, in fact, another feature of Running Style
that the same characters in the same text should never be written exactly the same
way. A commonly cited example is Wang Xizhi’s Orchid Pavilion preface (see pages
145–147), in which the character 之 zhī (a marker of noun modifiers) is used more
than twenty times but is written differently, elegantly, and beautifully each time.
The linking and consolidation of strokes increases the f low of energy between
strokes and makes the writing more cohesive. As a result, the writing of a charac-
ter in Running Style should be executed in one breath.
STROKE ORDER REVISITED
The conventions for writing Running Style also involve stroke order, which can
be adjusted to increase writing speed in ways that deviate from the prescribed
stroke order for Regular Script. In Figure 11.3 below, the stroke order in Regular
Script is compared to the way the same characters look in Running Style.
Figure 11.3. the stroke order of regular script and running style.
regular Script running Style
c h i n e s e w r i t i n g a n d c a l l i g r a p hy
144
In Regular Script, in the first character, 王 wáng, “king,” the second stroke is a
horizontal line and the third a vertical. In Running Style, this order is reversed,
that is, the vertical line is written first, then the brush travels up and left in a cir-
cular motion before it comes back down to write the final horizontal line. The
same reversal of stroke order is also seen in the second character, 生 shēng, “life”
or “birth.” The other characters in Figure 11.3 also exemplify changes of stroke
order that are part of the conventions for writing in Running style.
ARRANGEMENT OF TEXT
Another difference between Regular Script and Running Style is that char-
acters in Regular Script are written in a uniform size, while the size of Run-
ning Style characters may vary. In fact, an important consideration in writing
Running (and Cursive) Style is to adjust the sizes of characters for rhythm and
balance. Such adjustments are made not only between consecutive characters,
but also between adjacent columns and with regard to all other characters in the
same piece. The overall layout, including the varying sizes of the characters, re-
f lects the artistic instincts of the calligrapher. It is interesting to note that, when
masterpieces in Running Style are copied and imitated, even the errors and cor-
rections in the originals are retained because they are considered an integral part
of the artwork. Any modification would destroy the rhythm and cohesion of the
masterpiece. Figure 11.4 (page 146), a good example, is a copy of Wang Xizhi’s
Preface to the Orchid Pavilion Collection with all the errors and corrections in the
original retained.
In the earlier discussion of stroke order, it was mentioned that two major stroke
order rules dictate: one works from top to bottom and from left to right. Therefore,
the writing of a character generally proceeds from the top left corner to the lower
right. This general sequence works well when writing vertical text in columns in
the traditional way. It is in fact a consequence of life during the initial and crucial
stage of character development. Before paper was invented, texts were mainly writ-
ten on wooden and bamboo slats. Because it was easier to handle slats vertically
rather than horizontally, one or two columns of text were written vertically on each
piece of slat, and the writing of each character would proceed from top to bottom.
This tradition was kept long after paper became prevalent.
Since the advent of modern science and the influx of Western influence, and so
that scientific formulas, Arabic numerals, and foreign proper names and acronyms
can be more easily incorporated into Chinese texts, modern China has adopted
the Western convention of horizontal text written and read from left to right. This
is easy to do when the writing is in Regular Script since each character is written
independently in block style. In Running and Cursive styles in which characters
are linked, however, the traditional arrangement of vertical columns from top to
d eve l o p m e n t o f c h i n e s e c a l l i g r a p hy iv : t h e r u n n i n g a n d c u r s ive s t y l e s
145
bottom is easier and more natural. This partially explains why calligraphy texts in
Running and Cursive styles are still written in vertical columns.
Preface to the orchid Pavilion collection BY WANG XIzHI
Preface to the Orchid Pavilion Collection (Lán Tíng Xù 蘭亭序) is a masterpiece by
Wang Xizhi produced at the prime of his calligraphy career (353 CE, when he was
fifty-one). Written in the Running Style, it is the best-known calligraphy piece in
history. Over the past 1600 years, it has had a profound influence on Chinese cal-
ligraphy far beyond the boundaries of China.
In chapter 10, Wang Xizhi has been described as one of the best-known masters
of Regular Script. After he had thoroughly studied Regular Script and examined
the works of earlier calligraphers, Wang Xizhi developed his own Running Style.
In 353 CE Wang Xizhi invited forty-two literati of the Jin dynasty to the Orchid
Pavilion (Lan Ting) near Shaoxing (in today’s Zhejiang Province) for the Spring
Purification Festival. While enjoying their wine, his guests played a drinking game
for which they divided into two groups and sat on either side of a coursing stream.
Small cups of wine were put in the water and floated downstream. When a cup
stopped in front of a guest, he had to compose a poem. Anyone who failed to write
a poem had to drink the wine as a consequence. The good company and strong
wine put Wang Xizhi in a good mood; as a result he spontaneously wrote the Preface
as a prelude to the improvised poems that he planned to collect to record the happy
gathering.
The Preface turned out to be a work of stunning beauty, a perfect example of the
elegant Wang Style. Apparently the happy occasion and the effect of drink played
important roles, for Wang Xizhi, the story goes, tried more than one hundred times
a few days later to reproduce the Preface with the same quality, but he was never able
to match his own incredible, spontaneous calligraphy. The brushwork, the extreme
freedom and infinite variation in wielding the brush, and the composition made the
piece the best he ever produced. Although it was a piece of improvisation, it flows
rhythmically and is celebrated as a work of literature. The piece won Wang Xizhi
the title “the number one Running Style calligrapher.”
Emperor Taizong of the Tang, who admired Wang’s calligraphy so much that he
personally collected nearly two thousand pieces of Wang’s work, ordered a search
for the original Preface. After acquiring it, he set it as a model for court officials
and calligraphers to copy and study. When the emperor died, he ordered that the
original Preface be buried with him.1 The emperor’s high regard encouraged later
calligraphers to imitate Wang Xizhi’s style. The rubbings of the Preface today are
mostly taken from imitations from the Tang dynasty, as the original was nowhere to
be found (see Figures 11.4 and 11.5).
Wang Xizhi’s style has continued to influence Chinese calligraphy to the pres-
Figure 11.4. the shenlong version (ca. 705) of the Preface to the Orchid Pavilion Collection.
[ from nan and ji, long zhi wu, p. 76, where no indication of source is given ]
Figure 11.5. a close-up of the Preface to the Orchid Pavilion Collection.
d eve l o p m e n t o f c h i n e s e c a l l i g r a p hy iv : t h e r u n n i n g a n d c u r s ive s t y l e s
147
ent, although few of his priceless works still exist. The Orchid Pavilion, which was
rebuilt in the sixteenth century, now houses a calligraphy museum.
Running Style, which was developed in the late Han period owing to the need
for increased speed in writing, provides great opportunities for casual expression and
personality. With no prescribed standards, this style has artistic as well as practical
value. It is the most popular calligraphy style because it lends itself well to all hand-
written forms of communication. The development of the Running Style was an
important step in the development of calligraphy. The path of the brush is often easy
to observe in this style because the connection between strokes is clearly articulated.
When fountain pens were introduced to China from the West in the early twentieth
century, the techniques of writing Chinese characters using these new instruments
were developed mainly based on Running Style.
tHe CUrsive styLe
The Cursive Style, 草書 cǎoshū, is known for its bold and unconstrained nature. As
a noun, cao means “grass”; as an adjective, it means “rough.” A broad definition of
caoshu, therefore, is a script written in a hurried and sketchy manner. This might
have been the case when it was first used in the Han dynasty for making quick,
rough copies. Later calligraphers found beauty in the style and developed it into an
art form. A narrower, more technical definition of Cursive Style refers to its devel-
opment on the basis of the Clerical Script. As an art form, its dynamic nature makes
it drastically different from its predecessor. It is even more vibrant than Running
Style and thus reflects the mood and spirit of the writer more directly.
A much larger variety of techniques are involved in the production of Cursive
Style. Techniques and effects that are not seen in the formal scripts, such as subtle,
slow motions and dynamic martial-arts-like attacks, accompanied by diffused ink
blots and dry brush strokes, place natural and impromptu means at the artist’s dis-
posal. Stroke continuity is its most outstanding feature. As in Running Style, some
conventionalized rules are followed so that the style maintains legibility. Knowledge
of these rules is also required in order to read this style.
Cursive writing, which existed before the formal establishment of Regular
Script, originated in the Han dynasty and developed through the Jin dynasty. In
terms of manner and speed, Regular, Running and Cursive styles form a con-
tinuum from more serious, stolid characters to a quicker look and greater sense
of movement. The Cursive Style breaks free from the strict rules of the Regular
Script so much that it has been described as ink dancing on paper and compared to
powerful, dramatic music. To live up to its name, a piece in the Cursive Style com-
municates great energy, power, and speed.
Cursive Style has all the features of Running Style but takes them further, to-
ward faster writing, increased creativity, and freer emotional expression. More spe-
c h i n e s e w r i t i n g a n d c a l l i g r a p hy
148
cifically, strokes are joined much more often and with an even higher degree of
abbreviation. There is also linking between characters in which the last stroke of
one character often merges with the first stroke of the next. All of these differences
result in a notable distinction between the Running and Cursive styles: Although
the former is generally legible, the latter is too abbreviated for many to read. Even
those proficient in the Running Style cannot be expected to read the Cursive Style
without training. Figure 11.6 compares individual characters in Regular, Running,
and Cursive styles; Figure 11.7 is a piece in Cursive Style.
regular running cursive
書 书 书 “write”
可 可 可 “approve”
正 正 正 “upright”
多 多 多 “many”
还通 还通 还通 “still” “through”
是走 是走 是 “to be” “walk”
等待 等待 等待 “wait”
想念 想念 想念 “miss/think of ”
Figure 11.6. Comparison of regular, running, and Cursive styles.
Figure 11.7. Cursive style by sun Guoting (265–420). [ from sun,
caoshu shijiang, p. 28, where no indication of source is given ]
d eve l o p m e n t o f c h i n e s e c a l l i g r a p hy iv : t h e r u n n i n g a n d c u r s ive s t y l e s
149
Because Cursive Style is written without strict guidelines, each artist writes
in his or her own unique way. Actually, there are no clear dividing lines between
the Regular, Running, and Cursive styles. Their differences are subtle rather than
discrete. As a result, some works are categorized as Running-Regular, others as
Running-Cursive. A common misunderstanding of the Cursive Style is that all
strokes and all characters are linked so that the writing is done in a continuous line,
like a ribbon. In Figures 11.8 and 11.9 below, you can see that, even in “wild” cur-
sive, the most vibrant of the Cursive styles, different degrees of linking are evident.
A full break is usually made every few characters.
A feature and technique shared by the Running and Cursive styles (especially
the latter) has to do with the method of using ink. That is, the sense of rhythm and
movement in writing depends in part on the amount of ink used. To maintain the
energy flow in writing, the artist may write a number of characters before stopping
to recharge the brush. To do this successfully, the brush has to start with more ink
than usual so that it will not run dry before the artist is ready to stop. Consequently,
right after the recharge, the bush is full of ink, and the lines are thick and dark. As
writing proceeds, the ink gradually runs out, the brush becomes drier and drier,
and the strokes gradually thinner and lighter. This is the time for another recharge
of the brush. These cycles produce a rhythm between heavy and light, wet and dry.
Heavy, wet characters look nearer to the viewer, whereas light, thin characters seem
to be at a greater distance. A three-dimensional space is thus created in a piece of
calligraphy; how it is done and to what degree is part of the art.
The development of Running and Cursive styles reflected a trend in Chinese
calligraphy away from classic styles in favor of more innovative and individualized
forms of expression. In the traditional styles, excellence was based on skillful ad-
herence to conventional standards, while “modern” styles strive for creativity over
conformity, often at the expense of legibility.
The Cursive Style is the most expressive of all traditional Chinese calligraphy
styles. Probably for this reason it is the most popular with professional calligraphers.
Many artists writing in this style have colorful and eccentric personalities. Two of
them are Zhang Xu and Huai Su.
zHANG XU
Zhang Xu 張旭 (ca. 658–747), who was nicknamed “Crazy Zhang,” lived in the
Tang dynasty. A native of Suzhou (in today’s Jiangsu Province), he was an officer
in the imperial court who indulged in extreme drinking. Because he believed that
alcohol would release his talent and the true genius of his work, he would often
drink heavily before writing a piece. (Once when he was drunk, he even dipped
his hair into ink and used his head as a brush to write on the walls of his house.) He
applied rhythm and movement to his calligraphy and, it is said, while writing drunk
c h i n e s e w r i t i n g a n d c a l l i g r a p hy
150
he would wield his brush at a frenzied speed, yelling and laughing. His Cursive
Style featured characters connected by continuous lines and, often, great variations
in size. Because of the erratic nature of its composition, his style was referred to as
Wild Cursive, the pinnacle of Cursive Style that exposes the spiritual state of the
calligrapher in its expressive abstraction (Figure 11.8). Zhang Xu could not dupli-
cate his own work with the same quality when he was sober.
When writing in the Cursive Style, Zhang Xu’s brush twisted and turned in all
directions as it sped across the paper. He used wild cursive as a means of expressing
his inner self, putting all his feelings—happiness, sadness, disappointment, pleasure,
and loneliness—into writing. In the mid-Tang dynasty, wild cursive became very
influential. Zhang Xu’s calligraphy, Li Bai’s poems, and Pei Ming’s sword dance
were considered “the three perfections” in literature, calligraphy, and martial arts.
Interestingly, Zhang Xu, Li Bai, and Huai Su (to be discussed below) shared a com-
mon addiction to alcohol. When Zhang Xu was sober, it is said, he could not always
recognize the characters he wrote when he was drunk.
Figure 11.8. Wild Cursive by Zhang xu (ca. 658–757).
d eve l o p m e n t o f c h i n e s e c a l l i g r a p hy iv : t h e r u n n i n g a n d c u r s ive s t y l e s
151
HUAI SU
Huai Su 怀素 (ca.725–ca.785) was another great calligrapher of the Cursive Style.
Unlike most other famous calligraphers, who were government officials, Huai Su
was a free-spirited monk. He had loved calligraphy since childhood, but his fam-
ily was poor and unable to support his calligraphy practice. To solve the problem
he planted thousands of palm trees in his hometown and practiced writing on the
leaves. After he became a monk at the age of ten, he continued practicing in his
spare time after reading Buddhist scriptures and praying.
Huai Su benefited from studying Zhang Xu’s style when he started working
in the Cursive Style, but he created his own style as he became more experienced.
One of the most noticeable differences between the two masters is that Huai Su’s
strokes are much thinner than Zhang Xu’s. He often used a fine brush to write
out large characters. His strokes are rounded and dashing, almost as if they were
steel wires curled and bent. The tip of his brush was exposed where it lifted from
the paper, leaving a distinctive hook. Accordingly, his unique calligraphy style was
referred to as “steel strokes and silver hooks.”
Similar to Zhang Xu, Huai Su’s brush turned, spun, and danced to create char-
acter after character and line after line, in contrasts of heavy and light strokes. Huai
Su’s style represents the ultimate in Cursive Script: control with freedom and spirit
with restraint (Figure 11.9).
Huai Su and Zhang Xu, considered the two greatest cursive calligraphers of
the Tang dynasty, are affectionately referred to as “crazy Zhang and drunken Su”
Figure 11.9. Wild Cursive Autobiography (dated 777) by Huai su (737–799). Collection of the
national Palace Museum (taipei). [ from masterpieces of chinese calligraphy in the national palace
museum, p. 4. reproduced by permission from the national palace museum ]
c h i n e s e w r i t i n g a n d c a l l i g r a p hy
152
because of the many similarities between their personalities and their works. Both
men were free-spirited and unrestrained. Although Huai Su was a monk and con-
sumption of alcohol was forbidden to him, alcohol was nonetheless an important
part of his creative process. When he got drunk, he would start writing calligraphy.
Sometimes he wrote on clothing or temple walls—anything he could write on.
It was great calligraphers like Zhang Xu and Huai Su whose dashing, flying
characters rendered the Cursive Style the best means to express artists’ feelings and
emotions. Their works had an important influence on later calligraphers. For ex-
ample, Yan Zhenqing, the famous Tang dynasty calligrapher, studied under Zhang
Xu; later, Mao Zedong, the twentieth-century politician and calligrapher, admired
and learned from Huai Su.
WritinG tHe rUnninG anD CUrsive styLes
Because the Running and Cursive styles are informal and individualized, there are
no standards for how they should be written. All the artistic dimensions discussed so
far, such as stroke thickness, size and position of characters relative to other charac-
ters on the piece, stroke order, linking of strokes and characters, amount of ink, and
so on, are at the discretion of the writer. A decision has to be made on each aspect
and the best combination of all, in order to express the artistic effect the writer has
in mind. This is why Running and Cursive are generally thought of as personal
styles.
Beginners can try their hand at Running and Cursive styles by using the same
method of first tracing and copying from models, although practicing the Regular
Script for (many) months beforehand is always suggested. Tracing and copying these
styles, however, is quite different from doing so with Clerical and Regular scripts.
Because of the continuous flow of energy these styles require, planning is very im-
portant. Proficiency is required in order to produce fluidity. There should be no
pause between the strokes of a character, as this breaks one’s momentum. Therefore,
before writing, even experienced writers pause and mentally project how the writ-
ing should proceed. Tracing does not have to be done exclusively with a brush;
you could use a pencil or even your forefinger to trace a character to confirm the
stroke order, the proportions, how much pressure to apply at different points, and
the coordination of mind and hand. Do not start writing before you have a clear
plan for the entire piece from the very beginning to the very end. Before going for
Wild Cursive, a few glasses of wine may help you get closer to the state of Zhang
Xu and Huai Su.
Here is a helpful tip on the use of brush: If after writing a couple of strokes your
brush tip is split but you do not want to break your momentum and do not need
to recharge your brush with ink, you could give your brush a slight twist so that
another side can be used to continue writing.
d eve l o p m e n t o f c h i n e s e c a l l i g r a p hy iv : t h e r u n n i n g a n d c u r s ive s t y l e s
153
ConCLUDinG reMarKs on tHe
DeveLoPMent of CHinese CaLLiGraPHy
Chapters 8 through 11 have reviewed a variety of writing styles: the classical, un-
polished Great Seal; the tactful, meditative Small Seal; the precise Clerical Script;
the dignified Regular Script; the elegant yet unconstrained Running Style; and the
dynamic Cursive Style. Each of them creates a different visual and aesthetic impres-
sion; their evolution has been a gradual process of simplification of execution and
increasing aesthetic value.
Early Chinese calligraphy was written for practical purposes of communication
and record keeping. The Seal and Clerical scripts, for example, were not considered
art forms when they were created. It was not until the Sui and Tang periods that a
significant number of theoretical treatises on calligraphy appeared and calligraphy
started to be considered a form of art. At that time, Chinese calligraphy had already
reached a mature stage, with all the major scripts and styles in use.
Looking over this history of development, we can see that every script style goes
through stages of creation, exploration, mature perfection, and stabilization. The
final stage and perfection of a style is always marked by a number of masters of the
style, such as Li Yangbing for the Small Seal, the “Two Wangs” for the Running,
Yan and Liu for the Regular, and Zhang Xu and Huai Su for the Cursive. During
the Tang dynasty, the creation and perfection of Regular Script marked the final
stage in the development of Chinese scripts. The majestic Yan Style of the Regular
Script is considered a symbol of the peak of cultural development attained in the
Tang era. At that point, both the Chinese writing system and the art of calligraphy
entered a highly stable phase.
Today, all of the calligraphic styles are in active use with no artistic distinction
made among them. The choice of style reflects the feelings, philosophy, and tem-
perament of the calligrapher and is guided by the artist’s mood and the subject of
writing. Generally speaking, the Seal and Clerical scripts are considered more deco-
rative because of their beauty and dignity, so they are used on formal and important
occasions. The Seal Script, because it is an ancient script drastically different from
modern characters, is more difficult to write. Only trained calligraphers can write in
this script, and often they must use a dictionary. The Regular and Running scripts
are more suitable for practical purposes.
When reading about the lives and works of great calligraphers, it is fascinating
to note that the majority of accomplished calligraphers throughout the dynasties
were government officials or even emperors. Apparently, throughout the history of
China, calligraphy as an art has been closely associated with political power. This is
partly because calligraphy was, for a dozen centuries, an important part of the na-
tionwide civil service examination. Many scholars developed individual calligraphic
styles as a way to distinguish themselves socially. It is not that calligraphers were
c h i n e s e w r i t i n g a n d c a l l i g r a p hy
154
attracted to politics, but rather the other way around. Throughout Chinese his-
tory, members of the upper class and government officials were expected to possess
advanced skills in calligraphy. Such expectations, as part of Chinese culture, have
continued to the present day.2
DisCUssion QUestions anD WritinG PraCtiCe
1. Using the name of Wang Xizhi as examples, describe the differences be-
tween the Regular, Running, and Cursive styles. Specifically, how does Run-
ning Style differ from Regular Script, on the one hand, and Cursive, on the
other?
王羲之
王羲之
王羲之
2. Choose two of the three writings samples for this chapter on pages 230–
232 in Appendix 1, and practice writing them. Make a sketch first if necessary.
3. Figure out how you can write your Chinese name in the Running or
Cursive style. First practice writing it using a hard pen, and then write it with a
brush.
4. Use Figure 9.14 to identify the Chinese stem-branch term for the current
year. Practice writing the Chinese term in Running Style based on the examples
below.
甲 乙 丙 丁 戊 己 庚 辛 壬 癸
甲 乙 丙 丁 戊 己 庚 辛 壬 癸
子 丑 寅 卯 辰 巳 午 未 申 酉 戌 亥
子 丑 寅 卯 辰 巳 午 未 申 酉 戌 亥
155
c h a p t e r t we l ve
the art of Composition
Previous chapters have focused on the writing of individual strokes, characters, and
scripts. In this chapter, we devote our discussion to the challenge of putting together
the whole calligraphy piece. You will see that the art of calligraphy resides not only
in composing characters, but also in composing with characters. Composition is
a crucial part of the artistic creation and expression, in which micro-, meso-, and
macroscopic visions are all balanced.
There are many ways to put a calligraphy piece together. Considerations include
dimensionality—such as the size and shape of a piece (horizontal, vertical, square,
round, fan-shaped, and so on)—length of text, writing style, and balance of com-
ponents. Here, only the most basic elements will be described. For a general idea
of the major components and layout patterns, let’s first look at a few pieces of cal-
ligraphy. Some of the pieces illustrated in other chapters may also serve this purpose.
Figures 12.1 through 12.4 are all works done in the Qing dynasty (1644–1911).
Usually when you trace, copy, or write in order to learn calligraphy, you con-
centrate on one stroke or a character at a time. There is so much to consider that
you can hardly attend to anything else. When you plan to write a piece, however,
you have to expand your awareness and have the entire piece in your mind. You
Figure 12.1. vertical
scroll by Deng shiru.
[ from zhu, zhuanshu shiji-
ang, p. 76, where no indica-
tion of source is given ]
Figure 12.4. Clerical script by Ba Weizu.
[ from fang, lishu shijiang, p. 55, where no indica-
tion of source is given ]
Figure 12.3. vertical scroll by Zhao Zhiqian. [ from
zhu, zhuanshu shijiang, p. 80, where no indication of
source is given ]
Figure 12.2. round fan by Huang shiling. [ from zhu, zhuanshu shijiang, p. 61,
where no indication of source is given ]
a r t o f c o m p o s i t i o n
157
have to think about what to write, in what style, how large you want the piece to
be, the layout, the proportions of parts, how you want to sign and date the work,
and where you are going to put your seal(s). The planning of a piece involves all
aspects and phases of production. Each element plays a crucial though subtle role in
the overall impact of the piece.
The composition of a piece reflects an important aesthetic principle of Chinese
calligraphy: emphasizing the overall arrangement and macro coordination. Each part
must be subordinate to the whole. Another aspect of Chinese calligraphy, which is
conspicuous and also of vital importance, is the management of space. This includes
not only the spaces that are filled (known as “figures”) but also spaces that are left
blank (known as “ground”). Beginners should note especially that white space, the
void between elements, which is secondary in traditional forms of Western art, is
just as important as the writing to the Chinese artist. The black writing and the
white background are complementary, as water is to fish and air to birds. It is a com-
mon mistake to pay attention only to the figure and not the ground. Furthermore,
it is not only the inside of a character that forms the ground, but also the external
geometry. In terms of an entire piece, your overall plan should include not only the
layout pattern and balance of the main text, inscriptions, and seal(s), but also the
spaces around these elements. The importance of the “empty” portions of a callig-
raphy piece can also be found in Chinese painting, where the part played by blank
spaces cannot be overlooked.
CoMPonents of a CaLLiGraPHy PieCe
Generally speaking, a calligraphy piece has three major components: (1) the main
text, (2) inscriptions, and (3) a seal or seals. The main text is referred to as the
“host”; it is the main point of interest. The inscriptions and seals are “guests” who
play a balancing yet secondary role, as leaves do for a flower (see Figure 12.5).
Figure 12.5. Calligraphy by Wang Chunjie (contem-
porary), an artist in the Washington, DC, area. Main
text: “Coinciding with nature.” inscription: Written
with long-lasting happiness by Wang Cuiren.
[ reproduced by permission from the calligrapher ]
c h i n e s e w r i t i n g a n d c a l l i g r a p hy
158
Needless to say, the main text should be in the center of a piece, occupying a
commanding position. The inscriptions, smaller in character size, are written on
the sides. For beginners, it is always a good idea to make a rough sketch to lay out
the content, the style of writing, the number of characters in each line, the size
and positioning of each character, the arrangement of the supporting text, and so
forth. Sometimes, alternative plans or sketches are necessary before a final decision
is made.
MAIN TEXT
For beginners, the easiest way to assemble a calligraphy piece is to find the char-
acters you want to write in a model. Make sure all the characters in the main text
are in the same style. For example, you can choose the Yan Style or the Liu Style,
but do not mix them even though they are both in the Regular Script. When you
have the model characters at hand, practice writing them by following the model
precisely, adjusting the size if needed. When you are ready, assemble the characters
to form the main text.
When planning the main text, ample space should be left on all sides, in-
cluding the space that will remain unfilled. Do not forget to plan the space for in-
scriptions and seal(s) at the same time. No matter what style and script you choose,
there should be breathing space both within and around each character. Spaces are
not simply blank; they provide balance and background for the characters. The
direction of your writing will be vertical, from top to bottom. Multiple columns
should be arranged from right to left. A single line with a horizontal arrangement
also goes from right to left. No punctuation marks should be included anywhere in
a piece.
Text arrangement is determined by the style of writing. In the traditional styles
(Small Seal, Clerical, and Regular), main text characters on the same piece are usu-
ally written in a uniform size and evenly spaced. Note that the distance between
columns may be the same as or different from the distance between characters in
the same column (see Figure 12.4 above). For pieces with multiple columns, there
are two options. You can choose to line up characters in both columns and rows,
which will place the center of the characters on a straight line both horizontally and
vertically. This can be seen in Figure 12.1, 12.3, and 12.4 above. Or, you can line
up the characters only vertically in columns. This is shown in Figure 12.2 above and
Figure 12.6 below.
In Running and Cursive styles, both the size of characters and the space between
them may vary. If you use multiple columns, there should be interplay between
them; an extended stroke in one column should be paired with a skillful dodge in
the adjacent column. Similarly, a character that is small or light may be compensated
by another one that is large or heavy. Interplay of this kind can take place between
Figure 12.6. five-syllable verse in running script by Harrison xinshi tu (tu xinshi) (contemporary), an art-
ist residing in the Colorado area. inscriptions: 甲申 (jiǎshēn, i.e., 2004) 秋 (qiū, “autumn”) 新时 (xı̄nshí,
[signature]) 书 (shū, “write”). [ reproduced by permission from the calligrapher ]
Figure 12.7. seven-syllable verse by Wu Ju of
the song dynasty (960–1279). Collection of the
national Palace Museum (taipei). [ from master-
pieces of chinese calligraphy in the national palace
museum, p. 9. reproduced by permission from the
national palace museum ]
c h i n e s e w r i t i n g a n d c a l l i g r a p hy
160
characters in different columns, in different parts of the text, or even at the begin-
ning and the end of the main text, as well as between consecutive characters in
the same column. When a character appears more than once in the same piece, it
should be written differently each time. The character 橋 qiáo, “bridge,” in Figure
12.7 is an example: the first character in the first column (from the right) and the
fifth character in the second column are written in different ways. Such coordina-
tion will largely determine the overall quality and impact of the piece.
Despite various conventions and guidelines for the approximate placement of
characters, columns, and inscriptions, in practice, the best presentation is mainly
measured by eye and determined by experience. Learners need to make keen ob-
servations in order to develop intuition. Generally speaking, the larger the number
of characters, the more factors such as style, composition, and balancing of charac-
ters will be involved; the fewer the characters, the more significant the role of each
character will be. A piece with a single character as the main text, 福 fú, “blessings,”
龍 lóng, “dragon,” or 壽 shoù, “longevity,” for example, is like a solo performer
onstage—the center of everyone’s attention.
INSCRIPTIONS
Inscriptions are supporting or explanatory texts that supplement the main text. Al-
though written in smaller characters and placed in a noncentral position, they form
an integral and indispensable part of a piece. They should create a coherent whole
with the main text rather than hang on the edge of the paper. Inscriptions usually
consist of specific parts in a particular order: (1) the time or date that the work was
done, (2) the name of the artist, and (3) a location.
The shortest inscription may include only one of these parts, usually the
name of the artist. Occasionally, however, one may see a piece with no inscription
at all, such as Figure 12.7. Long inscriptions may include the age of the artist (in
case the person is exceptionally young or old), an explanation of why the work was
done, or even reflections on the main text. Inscriptions are normally placed to the
left of the main text (that is, at the end of the piece), near the lower portion. The
length of an inscription depends on the length of the main text and the available
space. Because of their supporting nature, inscriptions should never overwhelm the
main text by length or by character size.
The style of the inscriptions can be the same as the main text or from a later
period. For example, if the main text is in Clerical Script, the inscriptions could be
in Regular or Running style (Running Style would be the most common). The size
of the characters should be smaller and more fluid than the main text. These niceties
will create contrast and balance between your main and supporting texts, between
large and small characters, and between stylistic stillness and fluidity. In Figure 12.8
below, for example, the main text is in Clerical Script, while the inscriptions are
a r t o f c o m p o s i t i o n
161
in Running Style. The last line of the inscriptions reads: 辛巳 (xīnsı̌, i.e., 2001) 冬
(dōng, winter) 新时 (xīnshí, [signature]) 书 (shū, write).
Date
For dating a Chinese calligraphy piece, preference is given to the traditional Chi-
nese calendar terms. Often only the year in the stem-branch term (for example, 戊
子 wùzı̌ for 2008; see Figure 9.14) is recorded followed by an optional month or
season, such as 春 chūn, “spring,” 夏 xià, “summer,” 秋 qiū, “autumn,” or 冬 dōng,
“winter.” The exact day is usually left out.
Similarly, the month is also determined according to the Chinese calendar. The
third column in Table 12.1 shows some commonly used traditional Chinese terms
for months. Note that, generally speaking, the Chinese lunar calendar differs from
the Western calendar by about a month; a Chinese year usually starts around early
February.
Figure 12.8. Quote from the Yi jing by Harrison xinshi tu
(contemporary). Main text in Clerical script and inscrip-
tions in running style. [ reproduced by permission from the
calligrapher ]
c h i n e s e w r i t i n g a n d c a l l i g r a p hy
162
Table 12.1. Months in Chinese
eNgliSh chiNeSe traDitioNal termS
first month 一月 正月、孟春
second month 二月 仲春、杏月
third month 三月 季春、桃月
fourth month 四月 梅月
fifth month 五月 榴月
sixth month 六月 荷月
seventh month 七月 蘭月
eighth month 八月 桂月
ninth month 九月 菊月
tenth month 十月 良月
eleventh month 十一月 冬月
twelfth month 十二月 臘月
The piece in Figure 12.9 shows the typical way to date a piece: 壬午 (rénwǔ, i.e.,
2002) 十月 (shíyuè, the tenth month) 毛戎 (Máo Róng, [signature]). Alternatively,
the year may be represented using Western calendar terms, with the year first, fol-
lowed by the month. For example: 二〇〇二 年 十 月 (2 0 0 2 year tenth month,
or October 2002).
Signature
A piece of work can be signed with the artist’s full name, the given name only, a pen
name, or a nickname, depending on the purpose and formality of the piece. The
name of the author can be followed by an optional character 書 (or 书) shū, “writ-
ten,” as in “written by so-and-so.”
Location
The place where the work is done is recorded following the principle of most
general to more and more specific units. Be as brief as possible and use authentic
a r t o f c o m p o s i t i o n
163
place-names if you can. In Figure 12.10, the inscriptions include 嵗在癸未, “in the
year of guı̌wèi [2003]”; 新时, “Xīnshí [signature]”; 书於北美, “written in North
America.”
Name of Recipient
When a piece is written as a gift, the recipient’s name may also be included. Note
that the surname of the recipient is usually left out unless the given name has only
one character. The name should be accompanied by an appropriate title, such as 先
生 xiānsheng, “mister,” or 伉儷 kànglì, “married couple,” and a courtesy expression
such as 雅正 yǎzhèng, “please kindly point out my inadequacies,” or 指正 zhı̌zhèng,
“please give me your valuable comments.” The recipient’s name could be put at the
beginning of a piece before the main text or after the main text as the first part of
the inscriptions. In China, exchanging calligraphy and painting is considered an
Figure 12.9. running script by Mao rong (contemporary),
an artist in the Washington, DC, area. Main text (from the
right column to the left): “Mind and hand in concert, refined
strokes with great ease.” [ reproduced by permission from the
calligrapher ]
c h i n e s e w r i t i n g a n d c a l l i g r a p hy
164
elegant habit; it is also a common way to make friends and connections. Even when
a piece is written for sale, the buyer will often request that his or her name be put
on the work.
The piece in Figure 12.11 is a couplet by the well-known calligrapher Wú
Chāngshuò 吳昌碩 of the Qing dynasty. It was written as a gift to a person with
the given name of 玉泉 Yùquán, which appears first on the inscription line on the
right. The date, which appears last on the same line, is 甲寅 jiǎyín (i.e., 1914), 六
月 liùyuè, “the sixth month,” while the signature is on the left.
THE SEAL
Putting a seal (or seals) onto a piece completes the work. It is the last yet very
important step. The red seals create a sharp contrast on the black and white back-
ground. By adding color and balance to the work, they lighten up the entire piece
and enhance the aesthetic value of the artistic creation.
The name seal of the artist, usually square, is put under the signature of the au-
thor, with a space of about one character in between. Alternatively, the seal could be
Figure 12.10. running style by Harrison xinshi tu (contemporary). Main text: “Gallop without bound-
aries.” [ reproduced by permission from the calligrapher ]
a r t o f c o m p o s i t i o n
165
Figure 12.11. Couplets by Wu Changshuo of
the Qing dynasty. [ from fang, lishu shijiang, p. 17,
where no indication of source is given ]
put on the left side of the author’s name, depending on the layout of the piece and
the available space. Two seals may be used instead of one, but in this case one should
be a white-character seal (intaglio) and the other red (relief). The seal(s) should be
about the same size as, or slightly smaller than, the characters in the inscriptions. In
addition to the name seal, an optional leisure seal might be put at the beginning of
the main text, to the right of the first two characters (see Figures 12.1, 12.5, 12.6,
12.8, 12.9, and 12.10 above). The leisure seal can be rectangular, round, oval, or
another shape. The content of the leisure seal could be name of the study, a motto,
or a well-known saying. Note that the same seal cannot be used more than once on
the same piece of work.
Although seals are made in many different sizes and shapes, with characters in
various scripts, a combination of red and white is always used for the actual stamps.
To get a seal to show up properly on a piece of paper, follow this procedure:
1. First press the seal into a red ink pad and make sure the
ink has been applied to the entire seal surface.
2. Check to make sure the seal is oriented correctly by look-
c h i n e s e w r i t i n g a n d c a l l i g r a p hy
166
ing at the characters on it. This is very important. A mis-imprint
of a seal ruins an artwork or cancels the validity of a document.
3. Check to make sure the paper you are going to put the
stamp on has at least a few sheets of paper underneath to serve
as a cushion. Particularly if the surface underneath the paper is
hard, add a few sheets of paper. This will increase the clarity of
the seal imprint.
4. Carefully press the seal onto the paper, distributing the
pressure evenly.
In general, the writing of a piece should be done in one sitting to avoid losing con-
tinuity and coherence. The amount of supporting text, the size of the characters, their
location, and their layout should be determined in accordance with the design of the
entire piece so that it forms a coherent part of the whole. After the main text is com-
pleted, pause to take an overall look at the piece to see how much space is left. Then
you can make decisions about the inscriptions and the position of the seal or seals.
Artistically, inscriptions are as important as the main text and should be treated
with the same care. In fact, inscriptions can be used to adjust the balance and in-
crease the overall quality of a piece. They tell a great deal about the compositional
skills and the overall artistic attainment of the artist. A mistake made in the inscrip-
tions will spoil the piece just as mistakes in the main text do.
The piece in Figure 12.12 is a quotation from the I Ching by Harrison Xinshi
Tu. It shows a modern style in which two script styles are mixed and are written
in different colors. The two characters in the upper part are in Clerical Script and
in red, while the text in the lower portion is in Running Script and in black. No
inscriptions other than the two seals are included.
The compositional principles of calligraphy not only focus on its linear quality,
but also reflect elements that are universal to all art forms: balance, symmetry, ten-
sion, harmony, and proportion. Calligraphic characters should complement with
one another with no harshness or discord. The main principle of good balance and
poise is similar to that of a figure standing, walking, dancing, or executing other
lively movements in coordination with other figures—the entire piece should dis-
play an elegant air and a refined appearance. In addition, contrasts of opposites are
in full play: forward and backward, rising and falling, strong and weak, sparse and
crowded, confrontational and yielding.
CHinese CULtUre (5): CHinese seaLs
Generally speaking, seals are used to affix a stamp onto documents or other items
of importance to establish authorship or ownership. They work well as a form of
identification because they are difficult to forge and only the owner has access to
a r t o f c o m p o s i t i o n
167
his or her personal seal. Seals are used all over the world, but they are especially
important to the Chinese. Seals in China have traditionally been considered more
officially binding than signatures, and therefore they are much more widely used
than in the West for government, business, and private matters. No document is
official without the stamp of a red seal. In addition, the important role of seals in
Chinese artworks such as calligraphy and painting is unrivaled by anything in other
parts of the world.
SEALS FOR GENERAL USE
Chinese seals have been a part of the nation’s history since its early days. Some people
maintain that a yellow dragon with a chart on its back gave the first seal to the Yel-
low Emperor (ca. 2600 BCE). Others say that a phoenix gave it to Emperor Yao (ca.
2300 BCE) while he was sitting in a boat. Both accounts are simply legends. The
earliest forms of seals date back to the Shang dynasty (1700 BCE–1100 BCE). They
Figure 12.12. Quotation from the I Ching (Yi jing) by Harrison xinshi
tu (contemporary). [ reproduced by permission from the calligrapher ]
c h i n e s e w r i t i n g a n d c a l l i g r a p hy
168
were discovered at the same site as the Shell and Bone Script.1 At that time, seals
were simply shaped and featured crude pictographic characters or decorative pat-
terns, most likely representing clan names. Early seals were used mainly for security
purposes, for example, when government documents were transferred between two
locations. Before the invention of paper, important documents written on bamboo
or wooden slats were transported inside a hollow wooden trough sealed with mud
at both ends or with plaques bound with cords. A seal was sometimes pressed into
the mud or clay, imprinting its image onto the surface. A broken seal would make
it obvious that the document had been read or tampered with while traveling to
its recipient. It would also furnish proof of the sender’s identity. These stamps were
much deeper than the seals used today so they could penetrate far enough into the
mud to leave an impression (Figure 12.13).
After the Qin dynasty, seals used by the emperor were given a special name, 璽
xı̌. These large, square imperial seals were often made of jade. Imperial seals served
many functions. They were symbols of power, authority, and approval. Emperors
also used them to appraise and appreciate art; paintings and calligraphy acquired by
emperors were affixed with their imperial seals. Thus, many famous paintings from
the Forbidden City, for example, bear the seals of generations of subsequent emper-
ors. (See Figures 12.14 and 12.15.)
Official seals used at lower levels of government, called 印 yìn, were issued or
revoked when appointments or removals of official titles were announced. From the
central government to the local government, officials could be identified by grade
according to the seals they possessed. For many centuries, seals were a symbol of
power used only for official purposes.
Seals are still used daily in China at various levels of government. Modern of-
ficial seals are usually circular instead of the traditional square shape. Less elaborate
than personal stamps, they are engraved with the name of the governmental organi-
zation arranged in a semicircle, with a star in the center. The characters are usually
in the script called Song Style (see Figure 12.16), which is also used for printing
books, newspapers, and magazines. Official documents always bear such a red seal
to indicate authenticity and government approval. Documents such as proposals and
applications that need approval from numerous levels of government travel from of-
fice to office, collecting a new stamp at each place.
Seals, when stamped in red ink, are legally binding in business matters. Most
people possess a personal name seal to use when opening a bank account, making
business transactions, or collecting parcels or registered mail in a post office. How-
ever, very recently the use of seals in legal matters in a modern society has begun to
be questioned. Today, personal identification may include a handwritten signature
and/or a seal imprint.
Figure 12.17 below shows the logo of the 2008 Beijing Olympic Games, in
which a seal design is used as a national symbol of China.
Figure 12.13. Mud seal from the the Qin dynasty
(221–206 bce). [ from zhu, zhuanshu shijiang, p. 84,
where no indication of source is given ]
Figure 12.14. emperor’s seal (left: imprint; right: intaglio).
Figure 12.15. seal (relief) of the empress Dowager (Ci
xi, 1835–1908) of the Qing dynasty. [ from nan and ji,
long zhi wu, where no indication of source is given ]
c h i n e s e w r i t i n g a n d c a l l i g r a p hy
170
Figure 12.16. official seals of modern China. reading clockwise: Beijing University (left); China Medi-
cal University (right).
SEALS FOR CALLIGRAPHY
The Chinese practice of affixing a seal on artworks such as calligraphy and painting
started around the Song and Yuan dynasties (960–1368).2 It has been mentioned
that a seal not only establishes authorship, but also provides balance to the composi-
tion and adds interest by virtue of its own value as an artistic creation. Seals are so
important in Chinese art that they are referred to as the “eyes of the artwork.” A
Figure 12.17. Logo of the 2008 Beijing summer
olympic Games with a seal design.
a r t o f c o m p o s i t i o n
171
piece of art without a seal is like a face without eyes. Artists, collectors, and intel-
lectuals possess full sets of various kinds of seals. There are three types of seals for
calligraphy: name seals, leisure seals, and studio seals.
Name seals are seals that bear a person’s real name or pen (brush) name(s). They
are usually square with characters in Seal Script. They can be used on artworks
alongside the signature of the artist or simply by themselves (see Figure 12.18).
Leisure seals can appear in many shapes. They may bear a short inscription of a
well-known quotation or a motto dear to their owner. Some typical examples are
“Respect fate,” “Attain wisdom,” “Open-minded,” and so on. Leisure seals are cho-
sen for their size, shape, content, and what is needed to create a pleasing composi-
tion. Serious painters and calligraphers may own several dozen or even hundreds of
leisure seals. Qi Baishi (1863–1957), a well-known painter and calligrapher, took
the brush name “The Three-Hundred-Stone Millionaire” (三百石富翁) in honor
of his collection of seals.
Studio seals contain the name of an artist’s private studio. They are usually rect-
angular and can be used just about anywhere in a piece of artwork, for balance (see
Figure 12.19).
In addition to these three types of seals, one often sees collector seals on art-
works. Collector seals are mainly used for authenticating pieces of art. A seal of a
famous collector or connoisseur can substantially raise the value of a piece. Thus, it
is not uncommon to see Chinese calligraphy and paintings covered with dozens of
different seals that have been affixed over the course of several centuries.
SEAL ENGRAVING
Seal carving is an art in and of itself. Carvers must be skillful in three specific areas:
calligraphy, composition, and handiwork. The engraver today must be proficient
in the ancient Seal Script in order to design a seal. He or she must also be skillful
enough to shape a number of characters into a small space to achieve a vigorous
or graceful effect in perfect balance. Familiarity with the various seal materials is
another requirement, so that the right exertion, technique, and rhythm are applied
with the cutting knife. Every seal is unique; the material and character style can
be chosen to match the personality of the owner. For these reasons, engravers are
considered artists. Some famous calligraphers are also known for their engraving
abilities.
Seals are made in a variety of materials, including wood, metal, stone, glass,
bone, ceramic, and plastic. The most common material for calligraphy seals is stone
that is soft enough to be carved but hard enough not to wear out. If the stone is too
hard, it will resist the carver’s knife and chip easily. Shoushan stone (壽山石 shòushān
shí ) from Fujian Province is the most famous stone for seals. It is known for its fine
texture, multicolor hues, and carvability. Chicken blood stone (雞血石 jīxiě shí ),
c h i n e s e w r i t i n g a n d c a l l i g r a p hy
172
which gets its name from its appearance of being covered with randomly splashed
blood, is not as precious and expensive. But it does contain cinnabar (used to make
the red ink), which imparts a beautiful, unique look to each seal. Often seal knobs
have animal figures on top that represent the twelve Chinese zodiac signs. If you
select a piece of seal stone with an animal design on it as a gift, make sure the design
matches the recipient’s animal sign.
There are two types of seal engravings: relief and intaglio. In relief engraving,
characters stand out from the background so that the stamp shows red characters
against a white background. This is also called a yang seal or zhuwen, “red-character,”
seal. In intaglio, the characters are carved into the face of the seal, creating white
characters on a red background. This is also called a yin or baiwen, “white-character,”
seal. Figures 12.14 to 12.19 show examples.
Figure 12.19. studio seal of three characters (Pine-
snow-studio) by Zhao Mengfu (1254–1322) (relief),
yuan Dynasty (1206–1368). 松雪 (pine-snow) is
Zhao’s pen name. [ from zhu, zhuanshu shijiang,
p. 85, where no indication of source is given ]
Figure 12.18. Personal seal of Zhao Zhiqian
(1829–1884) (intaglio), Qing dynasty. reading
counterclockwise starting from the top right: 趙
之謙印 (Zhao Zhiqian seal). [ from zhu, zhuanshu
shijiang, p. 86, where no indication of source is given ]
a r t o f c o m p o s i t i o n
173
The characters engraved on the seal face can be of various script types, but Seal
Script is the most common. Although seals vary in shape and size, four characters in
the shape of a square, with one character in each corner, is very common—especially
for name seals. When a personal name consists of three characters, an additional
character 印 yìn, “seal,” is often added to create balance. Usually, such a seal reads
from top to bottom and from right to left. The seal in Figure 12.18, however, is an
exception, which reflects another important balancing rule. In this seal compris-
ing the four characters 趙之謙印, two of the characters (the first and the third) are
much more complex than the other two. The normal arrangement would put the
two complex characters on top and the two simple ones at the bottom, giving the
seal a top-heavy look. In such cases, an adjustment can be made to present the char-
acters in a counterclockwise arrangement in order to achieve a balanced structure.
When placing more than one seal onto a piece of calligraphy or painting, the
imprint order is name seal, leisure seal, and then the studio seal. Because the number
of seals and their placement affects the composition and balance of a piece, these
matters must be judged carefully.
Seals, in the eyes of Chinese literati, have special aesthetic value. The quality
of a seal depends on the quality, shape, and color of the stone; the design of its
characters; the calligraphic style used; and the sculpted figures on top of the stone.
In addition, characters and designs may be carved on the side of stones to increase
their beauty. As a symbol of power, authority, and identification, Chinese seals have
grown in variety and usage over the years. Although personal seals may not be as
common today as they once were, they will always be an integral part of Chinese
culture and society.
DisCUssion QUestions anD WritinG PraCtiCe
1. Seal carving is an independent art form in China. How is it related to
calligraphy?
2. Try your hand at making a personal stamp by using a piece of eraser:
a. Cut a piece of eraser to the size you want.
b. Place the eraser face down on a piece of paper and trace its
outline.
c. To design the words you want to show on the stamp, use a
pencil to write the character or characters within the outline in
the size and style you prefer. Make changes as you want.
d. When you are ready, fill in the characters using a brush
and ink.
e. Before the ink dries, press the eraser firmly down onto the
paper so that the ink on the surface of the eraser forms a mirror
image of the design.
c h i n e s e w r i t i n g a n d c a l l i g r a p hy
174
f. Use a sharp knife to cut the surface of the eraser to make
either a relief or an intaglio stamp.
3. Page 233 in Appendix 1 consists of three phrases, each with four characters
arranged on a vertical line. Practice writing these phrases.
4. On a blank sheet, write a piece with the text “Content is happiness” in the
format shown on page 234 in Appendix 1. Put your signature and personal stamp
on the inscription line.
175
c h a p t e r t h i r t e e n
the yin and yang
of Chinese Calligraphy
The fundamental philosophical principle of yin and yang is reflected in every aspect
of Chinese calligraphy. This chapter introduces that principle. It also covers the ap-
preciation of calligraphy works and the relationship of calligraphy and health.
Diversity in HarMony
The study of Chinese calligraphy is not only a study of Chinese writing. In many
ways, it is also a study of Chinese philosophy and the Chinese worldview. Aesthetic
principles and standards are rooted in cultural and philosophical tenets, and Confu-
cianism and Daoism form the basis of Chinese culture. Of the two Daoism has the
stronger influence on art. It is no exaggeration to say that Daoism, from its place
at the core of Chinese culture, is the spirit of Chinese art. Many characteristics of
Chinese calligraphy reflect Daoist principles.
Dao literally means “way,” the way of anything and everything in the universe.
It is the way things come into being, the way they are organized, and the way they
move about, each in its prescribed manner. Thus the notion of Dao can be under-
stood as the overall organizing principle: everything has its own Dao; together, the
c h i n e s e w r i t i n g a n d c a l l i g r a p hy
176
entire universe has the universal Dao. Any being, existence, motion, or force is a
manifestation of Dao—hence its power.1
Studies of the development of cultures have found that the beginning of human
cognition is marked by perceiving and categorizing things in the world as pairs of
opposites, such as light and darkness, male and female, life and death, good and evil,
sun and moon, old and young. Binary oppositions are a basic way by which ideas
and concepts are structured. Claude Lévi-Strauss, the well-known anthropologist,
observed that, from the very start, human visual perception has made use of binary
oppositions such as up/down, high/low, and inside/outside; objects in the sur-
rounding world, such as animals and trees, were also categorized based on a series of
oppositions. Thus, from humankind’s earliest days, these most basic concepts have
been used for the perception and understanding of the world around us.2 In modern
times, the concept of binary thinking remains deeply ingrained in every aspect of
daily life, from the design of electrical switches with on/off positions, to the yes/
no questions we answer every day, to the digital principles behind the design of a
computer.
The Chinese are no exception in this respect. To them, the world consists of and
operates on two great powers that are opposing in nature: yin, similar to a negative
force in Western terms; and yang, analogous to a positive one. These two concepts
are represented in the Daoist symbol known as the Great Ultimate, shown in Fig-
ure 13.1. In this figure, the black part is yin and the white part is yang. Figure 13.2
shows what yin and yang each represent.
Figure 13.1. the Daoist symbol of the Great Ultimate.
As we can see, yin and yang are two poles between which all manifestation
takes place. There is, however, a major difference in the Chinese view of these op-
posites from the metaphors of Western culture, in which oppositions are always in
conflict. Light is at war with darkness, good with evil, the positive with the nega-
tive, and so forth; they are pitted against each other and compete with each other
t h e y i n a n d ya n g o f c h i n e s e c a l l i g r a p hy
177
for dominance. In the Chinese view, by contrast, the two fundamentally different
forces are not in opposition but in perfect harmony. They complement each other
and come together to form a whole. This philosophy is illustrated by the Great Ul-
timate, which simultaneously represents duality and unity. One member is integral
to the other and cannot exist without the other: such is the Daoist philosophy of the
unity of opposites. The basic aim of Dao is attaining balance and harmony between
the yin and the yang.3 Because there cannot be yang without yin, and vice versa,
the art of life is not seen as holding to one and banishing the other, but rather as
keeping the two in balance.
The Chinese have emphasized such harmony since ancient times. To them, har-
mony has consistently been paired with diversity. Yin and yang are the two basic op-
posing forces in the universe, but they are not hostile toward each other. Their union
is essential for creation; they also work together for the well-being of everything.
Things are in a good state if there is a good balance of the two. Therefore, the Chinese
concept of yin and yang is not a concept of oppositions, but rather one of polarity.
The Great Ultimate symbol also has the appearance of a spiral galaxy, implying
that all living things are constantly in cyclic motion. The energy source causing
the motion is understood to be the breath of Dao, called Qi, or “life force.” For
example, one may see yang as the sunny side of a mountain or as dawn, and yin
as the shady side of a mountain or twilight. These phenomena may differ in ap-
pearance, but they are caused by the same energy source. As time progresses, yin
becomes yang and yang becomes yin. Nothing stays the same all the time. By the
same principle, all other things in the world—such as wars and wealth, births and
deaths—come and go in everlasting cycles.4
陰 yin 陽 yang
雌 female of species 雄 male of species
夜 night 晝 day
黑 black 白 white
地 earth 天 sky
月 moon 日 sun
溼 wet 干 dry
軟 soft 硬 hard
小 small 大 big
… …
Figure 13.2. the oppositions of yin and yang.
c h i n e s e w r i t i n g a n d c a l l i g r a p hy
178
DiaLeCtiCs in tHe art of CaLLiGraPHy
The Daoist philosophy of yin and yang and the dialectic of diversity within unity
have nurtured and fundamentally determined the character of the art of calligraphy.5
The pure contrast of black writing on a white background is a perfect example.
From classical calligraphy treatises to modern-day copy models, descriptions of the
techniques of calligraphy are based on elaborations of a full range of contrasting
concepts. Such concepts along with classical wisdom are the foundation of the aes-
thetics of Chinese calligraphy.6 Jin Kaicheng and Wang Yuechuan, for example, list
twenty pairs of opposing concepts to illustrate the aesthetic dimensions of Chinese
calligraphic art, including square (方 fāng) versus round (圓 yuán), curved (曲 qū)
versus straight (直 zhí ), skillful (巧 qiǎo) versus awkward (拙 zhuó), elegant (雅 yǎ )
versus unrefined (俗 sú), large (大 dà) versus small (小 xiǎo), guest (賓 bīn) versus
host (主 zhǔ ), and so forth.7 In writing practice, the artist manipulates and elabo-
rates on the balance between opposites, emphasizing diversity within parts and the
harmony or unity of the whole.
The yin-yang philosophy and dialectics are so fundamental to Chinese thinking
that they are reflected in the vocabulary of the language. In Chinese, a group of ab-
stract nouns is formed by compounding two characters of opposite meanings; each
of these nouns specifies a dimension of variation. For example, 輕重 qīngzhòng, lit-
erally “light-heavy,” means “weight”; 疾徐 jīxú, literally “fast-slow,” means “speed”;
長短 chángduǎn, “long-short,” means “length,” and so on. These nouns are fre-
quently used to describe the techniques of calligraphy. Table 13.1 lists some of these
words and the areas they can be used to describe. Note that many of these abstract
nouns (which is in itself a contradictory term) do not have equivalents in English.
Thus, in the table, the meaning of each individual character is used to indicate the
intended dimension of variation. You will see that many of these abstract nouns
denote aesthetic dimensions discussed earlier. Apparently, combining two words of
opposite meaning is a typical way to coin abstract nouns in the Chinese language,
but it is not a favored method of word formation in English.
In calligraphy, these contrasts may become the basis for artistic expression. The
most fundamental ones, such as “lift-press” and “thick-thin,” are used in virtually
every step of writing. The identification of writing styles as wild, pretty, powerful,
delicate, or elegant is often based on these concepts. For example, more rounded
strokes are generally thought to constitute a graceful style, while squarer strokes
are believed to suggest power and strength. Characters with concealed tips look
more reserved, while those with more revealed tips are outgoing and more expres-
sive. These words and concepts reveal the relationship of writing techniques and
aesthetic values to Daoist philosophy. In writing practice, the contrast and unity of
opposites in various dimensions create contour and rhythm of movement.
Rhythm in calligraphy refers to various effects such as dry and wet, or light
t h e y i n a n d ya n g o f c h i n e s e c a l l i g r a p hy
179
Table 13.1. Pairs of opposing Concepts Used in Descriptions of Calligraphy
Stroke 輕重 light-heavy 曲直 curved-straight
techniques 疾徐 fast-slow 方圓 square-round
收縱 retreating-confronting 藏露 hidden-revealed
粗細 thick-thin 長短 long-short
提按 lift-press
Characters 向背 face-back 仰俯 upward-downward
增減 increasing-decreasing 欹正 biased-neutral
疏密 dispersed-compressed 肥瘦 fat-slender
Composition 黑白 black-white 丑媚 ugly-beautiful
首尾 beginning-ending 鈍銳 blunt-sharp
抑揚 fall-rise 屈伸 bend-stretch
大小 large-small
Ink 濃淡 dark-light 燥潤 dry-wet
General 虛實 superficial-concrete 遠近 far-close
動靜 movement-tranquillity 剛柔 strong-gentle
雅俗 elegant-vulgar 巧拙 delightful-artificial
and heavy, created by the contrasting techniques described in Table 13.1. When a
piece of writing has rhythm and a harmonious combination of elements, it has an
innate flowing vitality that is of primary importance to the artistic quality of a piece.
Rhythmic vitality gives the piece life, spirit, vigor, and the power of expression.
With it, a piece is alive; otherwise, it looks dead. The beauty of Chinese calligraphy
is essentially the beauty of plastic movement, like the coordinated movements of
a skillfully composed dance: impulse, momentum, momentary poise, and the in-
terplay of active forces combine to form a balanced whole. The effect of rhythmic
vitality rests on the writer’s artistic mind as well as training in basic techniques and
composition skills (see Figure 13.3).
Rhythm can be found in a single brush stroke, a character, or in an entire com-
position. How strong the rhythm is depends on the degree of contrasts and their in-
tervals. Generally speaking, Running and Cursive styles have stronger rhythm than
the more traditional scripts. This is why many artists favor these two styles. When
a piece is created with the vital forces of life and rhythm, the result is fresh in spirit
and pleasing to the eye.
c h i n e s e w r i t i n g a n d c a l l i g r a p hy
180
The Daoist principle of yin and yang represents a dynamic view of the world.
Only when yin and yang are in perfect harmony can the life force travel smoothly
and exert its vigor. Without the Daoist principle of diversity in harmony, there
would be no Chinese calligraphy. Chinese calligraphy is often likened to Chinese
Zen in that it does not lend itself very well to words and can only be experienced
and perceived through the senses.
The way of calligraphy and the way of nature, although differ in scope, share
similar principles. Calligraphy best illustrates Daoist philosophy when the brush
embodies, expresses, and magnifies the power of the Dao. Thus, an adequate un-
derstanding of the concept of yin and yang and its manifestations in calligraphy, and
how various techniques are implemented to create contrast and unity in writing, is
essential to your grasp of the core of the art.
aPPreCiation of CaLLiGraPHy
Beginning learners of calligraphy often ask, “What is good writing?” and “How can
you tell?” Unfortunately, there are no simple answers to these questions. Chinese
Figure 13.3. Feng by tu xinshi (contemporary).
[ reproduced by permission from the calligrapher ]
t h e y i n a n d ya n g o f c h i n e s e c a l l i g r a p hy
181
calligraphy continues to hold a special position in art because of the strong aesthetic
impact created by its layout, its space dynamics, its black and white contrast, the
quality of its strokes, and its coordination of dots and lines. The evaluation of callig-
raphy has to take all these things into consideration. Below we will look at a general
procedure for appreciating a calligraphy piece. This procedure is divided into stages
that illustrate the dimensions in which calligraphy works may vary.
A good metaphor for the appreciation of a calligraphy piece is that it is like
meeting a person for the first time: A general impression is formed first, followed
by more detailed observations.
A general impression starts from first sight. This can usually be achieved fairly
quickly. Aesthetic judgment at this point includes the identification of style. The
viewer forms an initial impression: for example, the style of writing is wild, pretty,
powerful, delicate, or elegant. Based on this impression, assumptions can be formed
about the writer’s personality, interests, and even morals. It is believed that, since
calligraphy is a highly individualized art, writing offers a glimpse of the heart. In
Chinese calligraphy, insight into the ability to gain the writer’s personal traits is
considered one area of aesthetic judgment.8 Two pieces of writing may be equally
good but convey different feelings. For example, Figure 13.4 is a piece written by
Mi Fu (1051–1107) of the Song dynasty. It shows a style comprising angular char-
acters with forceful turns and hooks. This is thought to be an indication of a strong
and willful personality.
Figure 13.5, in comparison, is a piece written by Zhao Mengfu (1254–1322) of
Figure 13.4. Mi fu’s running style. Collection of the national Palace Museum
(taipei). [ from masterpieces of chinese calligraphy in the national palace museum, p. 18.
reproduced by permission from the national palace museum ]
c h i n e s e w r i t i n g a n d c a l l i g r a p hy
182
the Yuan dynasty. The style is more tactful, which is likely to indicate that the cal-
ligrapher was a more sophisticated and modest man.
When a learner chooses a certain style as a model, the choice itself may reveal,
in addition to personal taste, that the learner and the writer of the model have simi-
lar personal traits. Listen to your heart when choosing a model. When following a
model that you have a genuine liking for, you will be able to write better.
Overall composition and spatial arrangement also play a significant role in the
initial impression. The main piece of writing must be well balanced by the place-
ment of the seals, signature, and other elements written along the side. These ele-
ments are to complement, but not overwhelm, the main writing.
After the general impression, the viewer starts a closer examination of brush-
work and character writing. This second stage focuses on the techniques of writing.
Knowledge of Chinese scripts and calligraphy is required at this stage. The viewer
observes what brush techniques are used when creating a particular style. Impor-
tant qualities to look for include the strength of strokes and texture in writing. A
natural movement of energy is the life force that makes a piece lively. The viewer
will observe whether the lines flow naturally with rhythm and vitality, whether the
characters are well balanced, and whether they cooperate with one another with no
harshness or discord. While doing this, the viewer imagines how the writing was
produced by the brush from the beginning to the end. This adds great interest and
enjoyment to the process.
The third stage involves an evaluation of the content or the theme of writing,
Figure 13.5. Zhao Mengfu’s running style. Collection of the national Palace Museum
(taipei). [ from masterpieces of chinese calligraphy in the national palace museum, p. 26. re-
produced by permission from the national palace museum ]
t h e y i n a n d ya n g o f c h i n e s e c a l l i g r a p hy
183
its significance, and the atmosphere the piece produces. This evaluation includes
not only the main text, but also inscriptions as well as the red seals and the suit-
ability of script and style to the content of the work. From there, the viewer would
go further to pursue a spiritual understanding of the work. This includes going
beyond the form (the written lines) to understand the connotative meaning of the
work and how the work connects or reveals aesthetic principles at a more abstract
level. The viewer may also use imagination and association to create sympathy and
response with the artist and the work at the spiritual level. Calligraphy is different
from painting in that symbols of language are not direct physical images; they are
abstract linguistic symbols that create meaning indirectly. The abstractness permits a
great deal of potential in implication and interpretation.
As we can see, the three stages described above are at three distinct levels. The
first stage can be achieved by the general public, with or without the knowledge of
the Chinese language or calligraphy. It is like viewing a painting; a general impres-
sion can be formed without appealing to specialized knowledge. The second stage
is more technical and artistic. If a piece receives a positive rating by a knowledgeable
viewer at this stage, it is most likely good writing. The third stage moves beyond the
technical details into the realm of imagery association and abstract thinking. The
aesthetics of Chinese calligraphy typically emphasizes this area. Thus the apprecia-
tion at this level requires not only an artistic mind in both the viewer as well as the
writer, but also solid background in Chinese culture, including philosophy, aesthet-
ics, literature, and painting.
A piece of calligraphy is a piece of artwork. Whether there is communication be-
tween the artist and the viewer and how much communication there is depends not
only on the quality of the work, but also on the knowledge of the viewer. The more
a viewer knows about calligraphy, the more he or she will get out of a piece. Thus,
as a learner, the best way to refine your taste is to acquire background knowledge,
wide exposure to the classics and calligraphy works, and to practice brush writing
constantly. When you know what to look for, it opens up an entirely new world.
CHinese CaLLiGraPHy anD HeaLtH
Chinese calligraphy is not only an enjoyment; it is also an effective way of keeping
fit. In the Chinese way of life, cultivation is a goal that can be achieved through
contemplation and concentration. Calligraphy is an ideal means to achieve this goal
because it not only requires peace of mind and concentration, it also reinforces them
during writing.
Calligraphy is a mental exercise. In modern society people live a busy life, over-
wrought and exhausted by worries, anxiety, job pressure, appointments, and respon-
sibilities. Various stresses cause the human body to release hormones that produce
physiological responses such as shallow breathing and muscle tension. This stress,
c h i n e s e w r i t i n g a n d c a l l i g r a p hy
184
in turn, reinforces physically constricted conditions and perpetuates a vicious cycle.
In Chinese medicine, it is believed that the seven major types of human emotions
( joy, anger, melancholy, brooding, sorrow, fear, and shock) produce negative energy
that accumulates in the body and causes disease. Suppressing emotions only makes
things worse. Calligraphy is a moderate, healthy way to express emotions and re-
lease blocked energy. It provides a channel to disperse negative buildup in the body,
breaking the cycle and helping the busy mind to quiet down.
In East Asia, calligraphy is also practiced to mold one’s temperament and to
cultivate one’s mind. Even before writing starts, a writer typically initiates an effort
to calm down by letting go of daily worries and concerns and cutting off interfer-
ence from the outside world. During writing, the writer refrains from talking and
concentrates on the task at hand. By so doing, he or she is able to project the charac-
ters in his or her mind accurately onto the paper through precise muscle and brush
control. At the same time, the writing process also exerts a stabilizing influence on
the writer’s mind, resulting in an even more transcendent sense of peace and clarity
of thought. Thus calligraphy is commonly recognized as an effective way to remove
anxiety and discover calmness and emotional grace. This is why in East Asian films
scenes of calligraphy writing are often shown while the protagonists are making
important decisions.
Calligraphy is also a light, soothing form of physical exercise, very different from
strenuous workouts such as running or weight lifting. Writing involves almost every
part of the body, from the fingers and shoulders to the back muscles and the muscles
involved in breathing. Similar to Taiji, calligraphy is based on a typical Chinese
philosophy that emphasizes moderation and detachment. Through slow, moderate
movements, the energy generated in the lower chakras passes through the writer’s
back, shoulders, arms, wrists, palms, and fingers, onward to the brush tip and, fi-
nally, is projected onto the paper. This process encourages a balance between the
brain’s arousal and control mechanisms, increases blood circulation and the vitality
of blood cells, and thereby slows aging.
The function of calligraphy as a way to keep fit has a physiological basis. Be-
cause the writing brush has a soft tip, its control requires more attention, vigilance,
and accuracy than any other writing tool. Carelessness or interference from the
surrounding environment will affect the quality of writing; therefore, control over
any possible interference, including natural bodily rhythms such as breathing and
the heartbeat, is crucial to creating optimal conditions for writing. Theories of cal-
ligraphy never fail to emphasize the importance of calming down before writing,
concentration, and breath control as the brush moves across the paper.
Physiological analysis indicates that the high degree of concentration required
in brush writing causes significant changes in the writer’s physical responses. For
example, the initiation of writing is usually accompanied by a decrease in heart rate
and lowered blood pressure. When a high degree of concentration is reached, the
t h e y i n a n d ya n g o f c h i n e s e c a l l i g r a p hy
185
heart rate significantly decelerates and blood pressure drops significantly.9 These
responses are similar to those created by meditation with one major difference:
Meditation seeks tranquillity in a state of rest, whereas calligraphy seeks tranquillity
in motion. This contrast is a perfect example of the Daoist principle of harmoniz-
ing opposites. When the body is relaxed in the motion of writing and the mind is
at ease, the creative spirit takes flight into the formation and expression of beautiful
ideas. This brings about a satisfaction and contentment of artistic creation that can-
not be found in meditation.
The psychological and physiological activities that occur during calligraphy writ-
ing were noted by the Chinese as early as in the Tang dynasty. Prolonged practice of
calligraphy can play a significant role in keeping one fit and improving one’s health.
This explains the well-known fact that, in traditional China, most calligraphers
lived to an age well beyond the average life span. In contemporary China, with the
upsurge in promoting traditional Chinese culture and public health, a new form of
Chinese calligraphy has emerged, the so-called ground calligraphy mentioned in
Chapter 1. This form of calligraphy is practiced early in the morning, in the fresh
open air, mainly as physical exercise. Because its purpose is not to create art, it is
done with simple instruments and the most basic writing material. It can also be
done as a group activity, during which participants enjoy each other’s company and
exchange ideas and opinions about writing. Because of its gentle, moderate nature,
ground writing is a physical exercise most popular among elderly retirees. As a way
to keep fit for longevity, it is a new way in which the traditional art form has adapted
to the modern era.
DisCUssion QUestions anD WritinG PraCtiCe
1. Discuss the Chinese philosophy of yin and yang as you understand it and
how it can be applied to different aspects of life.
2. How is the philosophy of yin and yang ref lected in Chinese calligraphy?
3. It is said that Yan Zhenqing’s style has a lot of yang in it, and the Slender
Gold has a lot of yin. Do you agree? Discuss your view.
4. Explain how practicing Chinese calligraphy can be used as a way to keep fit.
5. Practice writing the characters on page 235 in Appendix 1.
6. Choose two of the three layout patterns on page 236 to write two pieces
(using the same or different main text). Design your own inscriptions.
186
c h a p t e r f o u r t e e n
By Way of Conclusion
Chinese Calligraphy
in the Modern Era
The word “modern” in this chapter denotes approximately the past one hundred
years. During this time, modernization and globalization have become increasingly
greater factors in the ways people experience everyday life, carry on traditions, and
practice art. Vast economic, social, technological, cultural, and political changes
have led to increased interdependence, integration, and interaction among people
in disparate locations. In this context, Chinese calligraphy, similarly to other aspects
of Chinese tradition, has changed and adapted.
In this chapter, we first look at the developments of Chinese calligraphy in mod-
ern China and its new life in the Western world. In the last section of this book, we
discuss the challenges Chinese calligraphy faces in the new era.
MoDern DeveLoPMents in CHinese CaLLiGraPHy
One of the most fundamental characteristics of Chinese culture, which it shares
to some degree with other Asian cultures, is its stability and resistance to forces
of change from outside. Chinese calligraphy, as a defining feature of Chinese cul-
ture, is at the core of this stable structure. In previous chapters we have seen that
c h i n e s e c a l l i g r a p hy i n t h e m o d e r n e r a
187
the development of calligraphy reached its peak in the Tang dynasty (618–907),
with numerous masterpieces created by the greatest calligraphers in history. Also
in the Tang dynasty, the development of the art entered a stable stage. For the next
thousand years artists have practiced the art by imitating classic works, rearranging
patterns, and adding personal touches to the existing scripts. No new calligraphic
styles have been created.
In traditional China, the brush was used for daily writing. Every educated per-
son wrote with a brush. Gradually, owing to the aesthetic features of Chinese writ-
ing, an artistic function developed that would eventually become the dominant
function of brush writing. When China entered the twentieth century, modern-
ization and Western influences began to show their impact. First, the adoption of
hard-tipped pens from the West changed people’s writing habits entirely; later also
came TV, the Internet, and other freely accessible media. Chinese society, like the
rest of the world, is becoming more and more commercialized and computerized.
People favor readily available means of communication and entertainment, gradu-
ally losing patience and motivation to use the brush and to practice calligraphy.
Since the 1980s, with political reform in China and the liberalization of political
control, the stable structure of Chinese culture is experiencing a radical transforma-
tion. On this fast track of modernization, great changes have occurred in the area
of calligraphy.1
Traditional art must adapt to changing times. While the practical, daily func-
tions of brush writing are becoming obsolete, the artistic nature of calligraphy has
supplied enough life force for it not only to survive but also to prosper in modern
society. This renewed vigor has led to a number of new developments, including
ground calligraphy. Here we will examine two additional areas in which new devel-
opments are taking place: hard-pen calligraphy and the Modernist and Avant-Garde
movements.
HARD-PEN CALLIGRAPHY
Calligraphy can be roughly divided into two types: brush calligraphy and hard-pen
calligraphy, which includes writing with any instrument other than a brush, for
example, fountain pens and ballpoint pens. The two forms differ only in the instru-
ments used. To produce artistic effects, hard pens for calligraphy may have a special
design with a slanted rectangular tip. Future development of the art may lead to
further innovations, such as writing with nylon soft pens and finger writing.
Hard-pen calligraphy apparently began in reaction to the adoption and fast spread
of hard-tipped pens from the West. Hard pens were first imported into China in the
early twentieth century along with Western notions of science and democracy. Be-
cause of their convenience, hard pens rapidly surpassed the brush as the major tool
for daily writing. In the early 1950s, during the mass-education campaign, young
c h i n e s e w r i t i n g a n d c a l l i g r a p hy
188
men wearing a fountain pen in the upper pocket of a Mao suit became a fashionable
symbol of education.
Like any art form whose growth requires preparation, exploration, and fertile
territory, writing with hard pens remained a convenience until the 1980s, when
relaxed government policies led to a Chinese renaissance. While brush calligraphy
thrived during this period, the time was also ripe for the development of hard-pen
calligraphy. The convenience and popularity of hard pens together with the societal
emphasis on writing paved the way. There was a nationwide upsurge of interest
and public excitement quickly ignited. Books and writing models were published
with soaring sales. Fast Writing with a Fountain Pen, for example, was one of the first
books on hard-pen calligraphy. After its publication in 1978, 13 million copies were
sold. Symposia, classes on TV, national contests, and exhibits, as well as newspaper
articles and entire magazines, were devoted to the subject. In 1988 alone, more
than sixty national contests were held, some of which attracted more than a million
entries. The magazine Chinese Fountain Pen Calligraphy has a regular distribution of
400,000 copies. In 2003 a hard-pen calligraphy website called Chinese Hard Pen
Calligraphy Online (http://www.yingbishufa.com), among dozens of competitors,
attracted 60,000 hits per day. Hard-pen calligraphy has become a popular, versatile,
and vital calligraphic form.
Building on this popularity, hard-pen calligraphy developed along the same
route as brush calligraphy, from an initial practical function to more emphasis on
principles and artistic features, and finally to the separation of practical writing from
artistic production. The rules and principles of hard-pen calligraphy are similar to
those of brush calligraphy, although reinterpretation of the principles and adjust-
ments in application have been made for the difference in instrument. Hard-pen
calligraphy can be written in the same major script styles: Seal, Clerical, Regular,
Running, and Cursive. Regular Script produced in hard-pen calligraphy is subject
to similar stroke techniques and has the same character structure as that described
earlier in this book. As with brush writing, the learning of hard-pen calligraphy also
starts with Regular Script, by first following the standards and rules precisely, and
adding individuality later. Many hard-pen calligraphers nowadays write in the Yan
Zhenqing or Ouyang Xun styles; those with high artistic achievements also develop
personal styles based on Tang dynasty standards. (See Figure 14.1.)
Calligraphy, like fashion, reflects the trends of the times. Writing in the Qin
and Han dynasties, for example, was characterized by classic elegance; that of the
Jin dynasty featured graceful charm; the Tang emphasized principles; the Song and
Yuan emphasized spirit and poise; and the Ming and Qing stressed unadorned ar-
tistic delight.2 In Chapter 10, two styles within the Regular Script were discussed:
the Yan Zhenqing Style, which was disposed to stone carving, and the Wang Xizhi
Style, which was best viewed when handwritten on paper. Some artists try to rein-
terpret these traditions in hard-pen calligraphy by producing new styles that incor-
c h i n e s e c a l l i g r a p hy i n t h e m o d e r n e r a
189
porate both the grandeur of Yan and the grace of Wang. To overcome the built-in
limitations of hard tips in artistic expression and the size of written characters, em-
phasis is given to innovations in writing instruments and their effects. Thus, from
the initial fountain-pen calligraphy, forms of writing using ballpoint pens, pencils,
chalk, wood, bamboo, and feather pens have been developed.
Despite these developments, hard-pen calligraphy, like brush calligraphy, is
threatened. The fast spread of computers and the Internet is rapidly changing not
only people’s way of life and work, but also their way of writing. As technology
Figure 14.1. Hard-pen calligraphy by ren Ping (contemporary), an artist in
China. [ reproduced by permission from the calligrapher ]
c h i n e s e w r i t i n g a n d c a l l i g r a p hy
190
provides ever easier and faster character encoding methods and convenient ways of
converting audio to text files, handwriting is rapidly losing ground to mouse and
keyboard. This new, sweeping, modern-world trend brings excitement to some and
worries to others for the future of the art of calligraphy.
THE MODERNIST AND AVANT-GARDE MOVEMENTS
The Modernist movement in calligraphy dates back only to 1985, shortly after
China reopened its doors to the world and thus also to Western culture and ideas. In
a provocative Beijing exhibit, which is often compared to the 1913 Armory Show
that introduced Cubism to America, a group of young artists challenged and aston-
ished viewers with a kind of calligraphy never before seen. These artists believed
that in order for calligraphy to develop and remain relevant in modern China, rigor-
ous traditional rules had to be broken to give way to new creative expression. While
still conversant in traditional calligraphy, they departed from its canon by varying
methods, materials, and scales. They also explored different media and techniques,
such as reshaping Chinese characters, taking titular characters back to their picto-
graphic origins, and mixing various writing styles on the same piece. While still
using traditional instruments, they continue to apply innovative brush methods, ink
methods, and treatment of paper for various effects. They handle Chinese characters
in an unorthodox manner and often mix calligraphy with painting. Straddling the
line between calligraphy and painting is the trademark of their work.3
The Modernist movement did not stop there. After the explorations of the
1980s, some Avant-Garde artists were ready to go even further. Drawing inspiration
from the experimental calligraphers of Japan and Taiwan, the Abstract Expressionists
of the 1950s and 1960s, and also from contemporary Western art, they began to take
Chinese calligraphy in the directions of conceptualism and abstraction. Their work
uses calligraphy techniques to create abstract symbols and images, some of which are
based on the shape and structure of Chinese characters but carry no linguistic mean-
ing. Western ideas and art have lit a fire beneath time-honored traditions, as these
young artists have become the mainstream of the modern calligraphy movement.
The Avant-Garde artists contend that, in order to revitalize Chinese calligraphy,
calligraphers in the modern world should participate in exchanges with the inter-
national art community. Chinese characters have isolated the traditional art from
international recognition and have prevented those without knowledge of Chinese
characters from gaining access to the art. Therefore, true modernization of the art,
they contend, will not be possible unless it breaks away from the exclusive use of
Chinese characters. Calligraphy, the Avant-Gardists argue, is the art of lines; it does
not have to be the writing of Chinese characters. Therefore, in their work, read-
able Chinese characters are discarded. Brush strokes and ink are used to draw shapes
without linguistic meaning.
c h i n e s e c a l l i g r a p hy i n t h e m o d e r n e r a
191
While modern calligraphy does not communicate words, it does communicate
emotion through shape, color, shade, and placement. New Calligraphers argue
that this abstract level of emotion, precisely because it is beyond words, is in fact
purer, truer, and deeper. The same driving principle lies behind many twentieth-
century movements in Western art and literature, including Abstractionism, Cub-
ism, and the fragmentism pioneered by painters like Picasso and Miró, and vers
libre poetry like that of Gertrude Stein and e.e. cummings, all of which sought
to evoke emotion via connotation rather than literal coherence or precise visual
reproduction.
Modern calligraphers hold that their works have distinct Chinese characteristics.
At the same time, they open a wide space for artistic expression and the possibility
of connections with Western forms of modern art. Modern calligraphy also allows
those who are unfamiliar with Chinese characters to participate in calligraphic ap-
preciation and even the creation of calligraphy works. They argue that this is the
most promising direction for the future development of Chinese calligraphy.4
It is no surprise that these trends have been strongly opposed by traditional
Chinese artists. They argue that calligraphy is defined and universally recognized
as writing and that writing in Chinese calligraphy consists of characters written
in brushwork. The properties of brush-written characters as both an art form and
linguistic units are the unique feature of Chinese calligraphy that distinguishes it
from any other form of art. Any attempt to replace orthodox Chinese calligraphy
with a character-free form would destroy it. It would also cause tremendous cultural
disruption, depriving future generations of the chance to experience and appreciate
this invaluable treasure of Chinese culture.
Chinese calligraphy is a symbol of Chinese culture and the soul of Chinese
aesthetics.5 It has become an integral part of Chinese history, philosophy, and the
Chinese mentality. It is a mature art form, with aesthetic principles and an aesthetic
spirit. Once the aesthetic spirit declines and the principles are lost, the life of the art
is gravely threatened. The so-called New Calligraphy, the traditionalists contend,
is like trees without roots and rivers without headwaters. The artistic value and the
linguistic function of Chinese calligraphy are like the two sides of a coin. The coin
cannot be sliced open without losing its value. An art form devoid of linguistic
meaning is not calligraphy.
The works of the Avant-Garde calligraphers are referred to as “modern,” “an-
ticalligraphy,” “noncalligraphy,” “destruction of calligraphy,” and “New Calligra-
phism.” In a society that has kept calligraphy on a pedestal for so long, making it
both an inextricable cultural centerpiece and an elitist symbol, the traditions and
values of calligraphy are now being pulled apart and reexamined along with China’s
national and international identity.
c h i n e s e w r i t i n g a n d c a l l i g r a p hy
192
CHinese CaLLiGraPHy in tHe West
When the influence of Chinese calligraphy made its first marks on Western abstract
painting in the early twentieth century, it sparked an international conversation
about image, text, texture, and meaning in art that continues to this day. Some
Western artists believe that Chinese calligraphy is the most ancient and most con-
densed of abstract art forms. It has the beauty of image in painting, dynamism in
dance, and rhythm in music. Thus abstract art—the ultramodern art of the West—
takes cognizance of the most ancient art—the calligraphy of the East—and estab-
lishes an intimate relationship between the two. Thus, although calligraphy’s home
is in China, it does not belong exclusively to China.
Wassily Kandinsky (1866–1944), one of the fathers of Abstract Expressionism,
became famous for his attention to nonrepresentational forms and his distinct mix-
tures of dots, colors, lines, and textures. He and his fellow artists and theorists
believed their art shared much with the tradition of Chinese calligraphy. They in-
tellectualized their work with Chinese philosophies—just as Chinese artists would,
decades later, also engage in cultural borrowing, intellectualizing their modernist
and Avant-Garde work with Western philosophies. The use of lines of varied power,
pressure, movement, and flow by artists such as Kandinsky and Willem de Kooning
(1904–1997) was believed to be modeled after the Chinese Running and Cursive
scripts. Many people also think that Franz Kline (1910–1962), whose best-known
abstract expressionist paintings are in black and white, closely emulates Chinese cal-
ligraphy, although the artist himself may not acknowledge that connection.
Some world-renowned artists, such as Pablo Picasso (1881–1973), Henri Mat-
isse (1869–1954), and Jackson Pollock (1912–1956), openly declared the influence
of Chinese calligraphy on their works. In Matisse’s paintings, the trained eye can
perceive traces of calligraphy strokes. These are more clearly seen in some of his
later mixed-media works that were largely done in ink. Some of Pollock’s paintings
also display the impact of the Cursive Script. Picasso once said: “Had I been born
Chinese, I would have been a calligrapher, not a painter,” acknowledging both the
influence on his work and his reverence for calligraphy as a high art form.
In spite of this recognition and appreciation by several masters of Western art
forms, Chinese calligraphy influenced the works of Western artists only in terms of
the techniques they used in the production of lines. Traditional Chinese calligraphy,
used to write Chinese characters, was never more fully incorporated into Western
art. This situation has not changed even after World War II, when the Western
world has become much more involved with East Asia.
The first formal exhibition dedicated to Chinese calligraphy in the United States
is believed to have been held at the Philadelphia Museum of Fine Art in 1972.6 In
more recent years, with the opening of China and the introduction of Chinese art
to the Western world, the art of Chinese calligraphy has found a new audience in
c h i n e s e c a l l i g r a p hy i n t h e m o d e r n e r a
193
the West. You have already seen some works of these Chinese artists. Figure 14.2 is
a modern piece by Harrison Xinshi Tu.
Most of the major art centers, such as the British Museum in London and the
Smithsonian Institution in Washington, DC, now offer a respectable amount of
Chinese calligraphy on permanent display. Many calligraphy works, both traditional
and modern, can also be viewed on their (and other) websites. Some modern Chi-
nese calligraphers now live and work in the West, where they mix Western abstract
art with Chinese calligraphy and computer technology to create a universal visual
language for the new millennium and also express the contradictions and com-
plexities of multiculturalism. Not only is their art displayed across the globe, special
exhibits frequently showcase newer works as well. In its new contexts, Chinese cal-
ligraphy is proving applicable to a full range of expression, including that of modern
identity consciousness and politics.
Figure 14.3 below shows a work by Xu Bing, one of the most universally ac-
claimed expatriate Avant-Garde artists, who now lives in Brooklyn, New York. Xu
Figure 14.2. Wu (void) by Harrison xinshi tu (contemporary). [ repro-
duced by permission from the calligrapher ]
c h i n e s e w r i t i n g a n d c a l l i g r a p hy
194
Bing manipulates language in his art, bringing fresh understandings of the powerful
role words play in our lives. In works such as Word Play, Xu Bing uses the instru-
ments and techniques of Chinese brush writing to write English words. Such works
challenge the preconceptions of written communication and reflect the complexi-
ties of cross-cultural communication. In 2002, Word Play featured in one of the first
major exhibitions focusing on the work of a living Chinese artist in the Arthur M.
Sackler Gallery in Washington, DC.
Abstract or modern calligraphy exhibitions are more successful in the West than
exhibits of traditional works. Western viewers often state that because they are un-
able to read traditional Chinese calligraphy texts, they cannot fully appreciate the
works. Some also say that cultural differences hinder their appreciation. The work
of abstract calligraphers, often influenced greatly by Western abstract art without
the involvement of Chinese characters, is usually more accessible to such viewers.
Figure 14.3. Word Play by xu Bing (contemporary), an
artist in new york. [ reproduced by permission from the
calligrapher ]
c h i n e s e c a l l i g r a p hy i n t h e m o d e r n e r a
195
Whether or not the typical museum visitor is aware of the rationale and argu-
ments behind New Calligraphism, the postmodern tendency toward unintelligibil-
ity has aided its reception in museums across the Western world. For the first time,
Western viewers have not been handicapped in their appreciation of a piece simply
because of their inability to read it as a text. Non-Chinese and Chinese alike are
qualified to “read” a piece of New Calligraphic art.
Outside of high art, Chinese calligraphy is also entering the everyday life of
non-Chinese populations. A simple trip to a local Wal-Mart or Target store may
reveal examples of Chinese calligraphy in various forms, such as a set of napkin
holders that feature brush-written characters for the elements (天 tiān, “sky,” 地 dì,
“earth,” 風 fēng, “wind,” 水 shuı̌, “water,” 火 huǒ, “fire,” 金 jīn, “gold”); framed post-
ers or prints of individual characters such as 智 zhì, “wisdom,” or 勇 yǒng, “cour-
age,” or more abstract notions such as 自由 zìyóu, “freedom,” complete with their
English translations written below; necklaces and bracelets displaying the characters
福 fú, “blessings,” and 愛 ài, “love”; and men’s and women’s shirts emblazoned with
Chinese characters in calligraphy. Apparently, designers have worked quickly to in-
corporate Chinese culture into their products to satisfy the interest and curiosity of
Western consumers. They have taken what was once the idealistic center of China’s
art and united it with the ideals of Western art to create a completely different feel.
Although it takes place within the familiar styles of Western popular art and fash-
ion, this cross-pollination has played a large part in bringing Chinese art styles into
mainstream Western life.
WHat is CHinese CaLLiGraPHy?
A literal translation of 書法 shū fǎ, “Chinese calligraphy,” was provided at the begin-
ning of this book. Now, before closing it, we come back to the basic question of
what is Chinese calligraphy.
Earlier in this chapter, we saw that modern calligraphy is an experimental form
of modern art trying to respond to two of the questions facing Chinese calligra-
phy in the context of contemporary international culture: (1) How can it maintain
indigenous Chinese characteristics; and (2) How can it participate in communica-
tion about modern art in the global community? The modernist movement in
calligraphy that began in the 1980s soon became engaged in an inevitable, heated
debate regarding whether it is possible to have an art called calligraphy in which no
traditionally meaningful characters are written at all. Controversies continue to rage
about the basic nature and definition of calligraphy.
A traditional definition of Chinese calligraphy is that it is the art of writing Chi-
nese characters using a Chinese brush. This definition entails three basic features of
Chinese calligraphy: its artistic nature, the writing of Chinese characters, and the
use of a brush. By this definition, Chinese calligraphy is truly a visual art and yet not
c h i n e s e w r i t i n g a n d c a l l i g r a p hy
196
only a visual art. Both its creation and its appraisal involve unique, profound con-
notations within the context of Chinese culture. It uses Chinese characters as the
media of expression to write poems, lyrics, prose, and philosophical sayings. The
literal content and the artistic, visual beauty complement each other. The perfect
combination of the beauty of form and the beauty of content is the very reason the
Chinese have been fascinated by the art for thousands of years.
By contrast, the definition promoted by the Avant-Garde movement is that cal-
ligraphy is the art of lines, and Chinese calligraphy is no exception. By this defini-
tion, calligraphy is deprived of its linguistic requirement and treated simply as one
more form of visual art. Like painting, the Modernists contend, Chinese calligraphy
was originally meant to create images that represent objects in the real world (by the
use of pictographic symbols). But this bottom line has long been broken, first by
the creation of individual nonpictographic symbols as early as in the Shell and Bone
Script and then by an overall abstraction of the writing system through the Clerical
transformation in the Han dynasty. The Modernist movement is taking calligraphy
one step further in the direction of abstraction. If painting without representational
images can still be painting, then calligraphy without readable characters can still
be calligraphy. The Modernists maintain that questioning the illegibility of modern
calligraphy is irrelevant because modern art, in general, increasingly blurs the line
between different types of visual art.
Over more than two thousand years, until the 1980s, Chinese calligraphy and
its practitioners did not interact with outside influences. Chinese and Western cul-
tures were isolated from each other for so long that artistic exchange would have
been unimaginable. Now as they meet and interact, we see more and more that
calligraphy, a defining feature of Chinese culture and the greatest of the traditional
Chinese arts, is more than just beautiful writing, as the word suggests. Instead, it is
the embodiment of an entire art style. The dialogue between tradition and mod-
ernization and between East and West can be seen as healthy and energizing for its
future development.
The Modernist movement does have deep concerns about the continued viabil-
ity of the art. This anxiety is affirmed in the fact that the Modernist movement is
not a hermetic or unidirectional progression; new concepts of all kinds continue to
play a strong, catalyzing role in inspiring new techniques. At the same time, the new
trends have not signaled the end of previous styles. All over China today, modern
trends based on all traditional and classical script styles can be found.
The current debate on the future direction of Chinese calligraphy is essential
to reestablishing its values and investigating its possibilities. While the new global
era is bringing about new thinking and exploration, as well as modernizing Chi-
nese calligraphy and involving it in contemporary art worldwide, it is difficult to
imagine that Chinese calligraphy will either retain its traditional forms and mean-
ings by rejecting new methods and ideas or carve out a new identity by discarding
c h i n e s e c a l l i g r a p hy i n t h e m o d e r n e r a
197
its time-honored traditions. More likely, various factions and methods will learn to
coexist peacefully, reinforcing each other under the Daoist principle of harmony
with diversity.
DisCUssion QUestions anD WritinG PraCtiCe
1. In China, the overwhelming majority of people use their right hand for
writing. The percentage is much higher than in the rest of the world. Many
“lefties” in China are “corrected” early in life to make sure they use their right
hand to write. After reading this book and practicing calligraphy for a while,
why do you think the Chinese insist that writing should be done with the right
hand?
2. What is your view about discarding the writing of characters in Chinese
calligraphy? What would you think about English calligraphy developing toward
a wordless form of visual art?
3. Practice writing the characters for “Good fortune as you wish!” (See page
237.)
4. Write two pieces with different layout patterns, one of each on pages 236
and 238 in Appendix 1: “Let your aspirations soar” and “Good fortune as you
wish!”
a p p e n d i x o n e
Brush Writing exercises
b r u s h w r i t i n g e xe rc i s e s
200
b r u s h w r i t i n g e xe rc i s e s
201
b r u s h w r i t i n g e xe rc i s e s
202
b r u s h w r i t i n g e xe rc i s e s
203
b r u s h w r i t i n g e xe rc i s e s
204
b r u s h w r i t i n g e xe rc i s e s
205
b r u s h w r i t i n g e xe rc i s e s
206
b r u s h w r i t i n g e xe rc i s e s
207
b r u s h w r i t i n g e xe rc i s e s
208
b r u s h w r i t i n g e xe rc i s e s
209
b r u s h w r i t i n g e xe rc i s e s
210
b r u s h w r i t i n g e xe rc i s e s
211
b r u s h w r i t i n g e xe rc i s e s
212
b r u s h w r i t i n g e xe rc i s e s
213
b r u s h w r i t i n g e xe rc i s e s
214
b r u s h w r i t i n g e xe rc i s e s
215
b r u s h w r i t i n g e xe rc i s e s
216
b r u s h w r i t i n g e xe rc i s e s
217
b r u s h w r i t i n g e xe rc i s e s
218
b r u s h w r i t i n g e xe rc i s e s
219
b r u s h w r i t i n g e xe rc i s e s
220
b r u s h w r i t i n g e xe rc i s e s
221
b r u s h w r i t i n g e xe rc i s e s
222
b r u s h w r i t i n g e xe rc i s e s
223
b r u s h w r i t i n g e xe rc i s e s
224
b r u s h w r i t i n g e xe rc i s e s
225
b r u s h w r i t i n g e xe rc i s e s
226
b r u s h w r i t i n g e xe rc i s e s
227
b r u s h w r i t i n g e xe rc i s e s
228
b r u s h w r i t i n g e xe rc i s e s
229
b r u s h w r i t i n g e xe rc i s e s
230
b r u s h w r i t i n g e xe rc i s e s
231
b r u s h w r i t i n g e xe rc i s e s
232
b r u s h w r i t i n g e xe rc i s e s
233
b r u s h w r i t i n g e xe rc i s e s
234
b r u s h w r i t i n g e xe rc i s e s
235
b r u s h w r i t i n g e xe rc i s e s
236
b r u s h w r i t i n g e xe rc i s e s
237
b r u s h w r i t i n g e xe rc i s e s
238
b r u s h w r i t i n g e xe rc i s e s
239
b r u s h w r i t i n g e xe rc i s e s
240
b r u s h w r i t i n g e xe rc i s e s
241
b r u s h w r i t i n g e xe rc i s e s
242
a p p e n d i x t wo
Pinyin Pronunciation Guide
p i ny i n p ro n u n c i a t i o n g u i d e
244
PiNyiN ProNuNciatioN guiDe
b- as in bay
c- as in it’s hell
ch- as in cheese, with the tongue curled more to the back
d- as in day
f- as in food
g- as in gay
h- as in hay
j- as in jeep
k- as in car
l- as in lay
m- as in may
n- as in net
-ng as in sing
p- as in pay
q- as in cheap, with the tongue higher and more to the front
r- as in red, with the tongue tip curled far back, lips unrounded
s- as in say
sh- as in shoe, but with the tongue tip curled far back
t- as in tea
w- as in way
x- like sh in she, with the tongue higher and more to the front
y- as in yard
z- like ds in beds
zh- like j in just, but with the tongue tip curled far back
p i ny i n p ro n u n c i a t i o n g u i d e
245
PiNyiN ProNuNciatioN guiDe
a as in far
ai as in idle
an as in bunch
ang far + sing
ao as in loud
e like the British er, with tenser muscles
ei as in eight
en as in elephant
eng as in lung
er like saying the letter r
i as in tea
-i
(after z-, c-, s-, zh, ch-, sh-, r-) a vowel produced by keeping
the tongue in manner of the preceding consonant
ia i + a (like Yah)
ian i + en (like yen)
iao i + ao (like yow in yowl)
ie i + e (like yeh)
in like in
ing as in sing
iong i + ong
iu i + (o)u (like you or yoo in yoo-hoo)
ong hood + sing
ou like oh
u as in rule, but with more lip rounding
p i ny i n p ro n u n c i a t i o n g u i d e
246
PiNyiN ProNuNciatioN guiDe
ü
(=yu) like tea but pronounce with the lips rounded as for the
oo of ooze (written as u after j, q, x, y)
ua u + a as in water
uai u + ai (like saying the letter “y”)
uan u + an (or ü + an after j, q, x, y)
uang u + ang
ue ü + e
ui u + ei (like weigh)
un u + n
uo u + o
tHe foUr tones
Voice range is divided into five levels to indicate the pitch contour of a tone: high
(5), mid-high (4), mid (3), mid-low (2), and low (1). A tone mark is put on top of
a vowel in a syllable.
first tone 5-5 flat like a hesitative “Ah—”
second tone 3-5 rising as in the question “What?”
third tone 2-1-4 as in a skeptical “Yeah . . . ”
fourth tone 5-1 falling, as in an emphatic “Yes!!”
247
notes
CHaPter 1
1. See Kraus, Brushes with Power, for an in-depth discussion of the role calligra-
phy plays in politics in China.
CHaPter 2
1. For further discussion, see Chen, Chinese Calligraphy, and Tseng, A History
of Chinese Calligraphy.
2. Chen, Chinese Calligraphy; Tseng, A History of Chinese Calligraphy.
3. See Tseng, A History of Chinese Calligraphy.
CHaPter 4
1. For further discussions of Chinese names, see Lip, Choosing Auspicious Chi-
nese Names, and Louie, Chinese American Names.
2. Because there are different romanization systems in use, these surnames could
n o t e s t o p a g e s x x x – x x x
248
n o t e s t o p a g e s 6 0 – 1 0 2
be spelled differently. For example, Zhang 張 could also be spelled Chang, Wang
王 is sometimes Wong, Zhao 趙 may be Chao, and Chen 陳 could also be Chan.
3. The consonant at the beginning of a syllable is optional; a nasal (such as
“n”) is also possible at the end of a syllable. Thus syllables such as “en” and “ing”
(also written “ying”) are acceptable.
CHaPter 5
1. The effort to simplify traditional characters has both positive and negative
implications. For further discussion, see DeFrancis, The Chinese Language.
CHaPter 6
1. See chapter 2 of Kraus, Brushes with Power, for a discussion of this and other
misconceptions regarding Chinese characters and calligraphy.
2. See DeFrancis, The Chinese Language.
3. 囗 by itself is not a character and, thus, no pronunciation is assigned to it.
Consequently, there is no romanization for the symbol.
CHaPter 7
1. Square is the general shape of Chinese characters, although different script
styles (e.g., Seal, Clerical, and Regular Script) vary to some extent in character
shapes. This issue will be discussed in Chapters 8 through 10.
2. Zhou, Hanzi jiaoxue lilon yu fangfa, chap. 2.
3. See Chiang, Chinese Calligraphy, and Kwo, Chinese Brushwork, for excellent
and comprehensive discussions of this topic.
CHaPter 8
1. See Jin and Wang, Zhongguo shufa wenhua daguan, 9–12 for further discussion.
2. Refer to Tseng, A History of Chinese Calligraphy, for further discussion and
an English translation of an elaborate classification of about ninety script styles by
Yu Yuanwei of the Liang dynasty (sixth century).
3. Script names and the exact time periods they were used are an area of aca-
demic debate. Tseng, for example, presents a different view of the Great Seal
Script. The English translations of the script names also vary from author to au-
thor. Jin and Wang also offer a discussion of this topic (Zhongguo shufa wenhua da-
guan, 9).
4. This is, again, an area of debate. Research has identified markings on black
pottery and bronze vessels that predate the Shell and Bone Script, but scholars’
n o t e s t o p a g e s x x x – x x x
249
n o t e s t o p a g e s 1 0 5 – 1 7 6
views differ on whether they can be considered symbols of a true written language
(see Boltz, The Origin and Early Development of the Chinese Writing System; He et
al., Hanzi wenhua daguan; Keightley, “The Origin of Writing in China”; Tseng, A
History of Chinese Calligraphy).
5. See Liu, Bainian hua jiagu.
6. See also Liu, Bainian hua jiagu.
7. See Tseng, A History of Chinese Calligraphy.
CHaPter 9
1. This is another example of a long and gradual development credited to one
person. Although the official date for the invention of paper is 105 CE, archaeo-
logical evidence shows that paper was used for writing at least one hundred years
before Cai Lun ( Jin and Wang, Zhongguo shufa wenhua daguan, 452).
2. It could also be “silkworm’s head and wild goose’s tail” (蠶頭雁尾). 雁 and
燕 have the same sound, yàn, in Chinese but differ in meaning.
3. The twentieth year of the Kangxi era generally corresponds to the year
1681. But the twelfth month of the year in the Chinese calendar would be in
1682, owing to calendar differences.
CHaPter 10
1. See Jin and Wang, Zhongguo shufa wenhua daguan, 20, for further discussion.
2. See Chiang, Chinese Calligraphy.
CHaPter 11
1. See Tseng, A History of Chinese Calligraphy.
2. See Kraus, Brushes with Power, for further discussion.
CHaPter 12
1. See Jin and Wang, Zhongguo shufa wenhua daguan, 687, and Tseng, A History
of Chinese Calligraphy.
2. See Jin and Wang, Zhongguo shufa wenhua daguan, 43.
CHaPter 13
1. See Watts, Tao, and Welch, Taoism.
2. See Lévi-Strauss, Totemism, and Pearson, Shamanism and the Ancient Mind, for
more discussion.
n o t e s t o p a g e s x x x – x x x
250
n o t e s t o p a g e s 1 7 7 – 1 9 2
3. For further discussion of the harmony of yin and yang, see Cooper, Yin and
Yang; Watts, Tao; and Tang, “Opposition and Unity.”
4. See Cooper, Yin and Yang, chap. 2 for further discussion.
5. See Jin and Wang, Zhongguo shufa wenhua daguan, 355–357, for further dis-
cussion.
6. Discussion of this topic can be found in Chen Zhenlian, Shufa meixue; Gu,
The Three Steps of Modern Calligraphy; Kwo, Chinese Brushwork; and Xiong, Zhong-
guo shufa lilun tixi.
7. Jin and Wang, Zhongguo shufa wenhua daguan, 120–138.
8. Further discussion can be found in Jin and Wang, Zhongguo shufa wenhua
daguan, 138–148.
9. See Kao et al., “Chinese Calligraphy and Heartrate Reduction,” for reports
on related physiological experiments.
CHaPter 14
1. Part 3 of Kraus, Brushes with Power, offers a more detailed discussion of this
point.
2. See Jin and Wang, Zhongguo shufa wenhua daguan, 7, for further discussion.
3. See Gu, The Three Steps of Modern Calligraphy.
4. Further discussion can be found in Barrass, The Art of Calligraphy in Modern
China, and Gu, Three Steps.
5. See Jin and Wang, Zhongguo shufa wenhua daguan, 7, and Xiong, Zhongguo
shufa lilun tixi, for further discussion.
6. See Tseng, A History of Chinese Calligraphy.
251
bamboo slats 竹簡 zhújiǎn
boar (zodiac) 豬 zhū
borrowing 假借 jiǎjiè
Bronze Script 金文 jīnwén
brush 毛筆 máobı̌
calligraphy 書法 shūfǎ
center tip 中锋 zhōngfēng
character formation 造字 zàozì
chicken blood stone 雞血石 jīxiě shí
Clerical Script 隸書 lìshū
Clerical transformation 隶变 lìbiàn
collector seals 收藏章 shōucángzhāng
composition 章法 zhāngfǎ
copying 臨 lín
Cursive Style 草書 cǎoshū
dog (zodiac) 狗 gǒu
dot (stroke) 點 diǎn
( e n g l i s h – c h i n e s e – p i ny i n )
Glossary
g l o s s a r y ( e n g l i s h – c h i n e s e – p i ny i n )
252
down-left (stroke) 撇 piě
down-right (stroke) 捺 nà
dragon (zodiac) 龍 lóng
Duan inkstone 端硯 Duānyàn
Earthly Branches 地支 dìzhī
goat hair (brush) 羊毫 yángháo
Great Seal Script 大篆 dàzhuàn
hard (tipped) pen 硬筆 yìngbı̌
Heavenly Stems 天干 tiāngàn
hook (stoke) 鈎 gōu
horizontal line (stroke) 横 héng
horse (zodiac) 馬 mǎ
Hu brush 湖筆 Húbı̌
Hui ink 徽墨 Huīmò
indicatives 指事 zhı̌shì
ink 墨 mò
ink stone 硯 yàn
instruments 工具 gōngjù
intaglio 白文印 báiwényìn
large-size characters 大楷 dàkǎi
leisure seals 閑章 xiánzhāng
lift 提 tí
mid-size characters 中楷 zhōngkǎi
mi-grid 米字格 mı̌zìgé
mixed hair (brush) 兼毫 jiānháo
model (for writing) 帖 tiè
monkey (zodiac) 猴 hóu
mouse (zodiac) 鼠 shǔ
name seals 名章 míngzhāng
nine-cell grid pattern 九宮格 jiǔgōnggé
official seals 官印 guānyìn
outline tracing 勾描 gōumiáo
ox (zodiac) 牛 niú
pause 頓 dùn
personal seals 私章 sīzhāng
pictographs 象形 xiàngxíng
press down 按 àn
g l o s s a r y ( e n g l i s h – c h i n e s e – p i ny i n )
253
rabbit (zodiac) 兔 tù
red tracing 描紅 miáohóng
Regular Script 楷書 kǎishū
relief 朱文印 zhūwényìn
rice paper 宣紙 xuānzhı̌
right-up tick (stroke) 提 tí
rooster (zodiac) 雞 jī
royal seals 璽 xı̌
Running Style 行書 xíngshū
script 書體 shūtı̌
seal carving 篆刻 zhuànkè
seals 印 yìn
Seal Script 篆書 zhuànshū
semantic compounds 會意 huìyì
semantic-phonetic
compounds 形聲 xíngshēng
semantic transfer 轉註 zhuǎnzhù
sheep (zodiac) 羊 yáng
Shell and Bone Script 甲骨文 jiǎgǔwén
Shoushan stone 寿山石 shòushān shí
side tip 侧锋 cèfēng
Small Seal Script 小篆 xiǎozhuàn
small-size characters 小楷 xiǎokǎi
snake (zodiac) 蛇 shé
square-grid pattern 方格 fānggé
strokes 筆畫 bı̌huà
stroke techniques 筆法 bı̌fǎ
studio seals 斋馆印 zhāiguǎnyìn
tiger (zodiac) 虎 hǔ
tip 鋒 fēng
tracing 摹 mò
turn (stroke) 折 zhé
vertical line (stroke) 竪 shù
weasel hair (brush) 狼毫 lángháo
Wild Cursive Script 狂草 kuángcǎo
wooden slats 木簡 mùjiǎn
255
references
Atsuji Tetsuji. Tushuo hanzi de lishi 图说汉字的历史 (An illustrated history of
Chinese characters). Translation into Chinese by Gao Wenhan. Shandong
Huabao Chubanshe, 2005.
Barrass, Gordon S. The Art of Calligraphy in Modern China. Berkeley: University of
California Press, 2002.
Boltz, William G. The Origin and Early Development of the Chinese Writing System.
New Haven, CT:American Oriental Society, 1994/2003.
Chen, Tingyou. Chinese Calligraphy. Beijing: Wuzhou Chuanbo Chubanshe,
2003.
Chen Zhenlian 陳振濂. Shufa Meixue 書法美學 (Aesthetics of Chinese calligra-
phy). Xi’an: Shanxi Renmin Yishu Chubanshe, 2004.
Chiang, Yee. Chinese Calligraphy: An Introduction to Its Aesthetic and Technique.
Cambridge, MA: Harvard University Press, 1973.
Cooper, Jean C. Yin and Yang: The Taoist Harmony of Opposites. Wellingborough
[England]: Aquarian Press, 1981.
DeFrancis, John. The Chinese Language: Fact and Fantasy. Honolulu: University of
Hawai‘i Press, 1984.
re f e re n c e s
256
Fang Chuanxin 方传鑫. Lishu shijiang 隶书十讲 (Ten lectures on Clerical Script).
Shanghai: Shanghai Shuhua Chubanshe, 2003.
Gu, Gan. The Three Steps of Modern Calligraphy. Beijing: Chinese Book Publishing
House, 1990.
Gugong fashu xuancui 故宮法書選萃 (Masterpieces of Chinese calligraphy in the
National Palace Museum). Taipei: National Palace Museum, 1973.
Gugong wenju xuancui 故宮文具選萃 (Masterpieces of Chinese writing materials
in the National Palace Museum) Taipei: National Palace Museum, 1971.
Guo, Bonan. Gate to Chinese Calligraphy. Beijing: Foreign Language Press, 1995.
Guo Nongsheng 郭農聲 and Li Pu 李甫, eds. Shufa jiaoxue 書法教學 (The
teaching of Chinese calligraphy). Taipei: Hongye Wenhua Shiye Youxian-
gongsi, 1995.
He Jiuying 何九盈, Hu Shuangbao 胡双宝, and Zhang Meng 张猛, eds. Hanzi
wenhua daguan 汉字文化大观 (A grand exposition of the culture of Chinese
characters). Beijing: Beijing Daxue Chubanshe, 1995.
Jin Kaicheng 金開誠 and Wang Yuechuan 王岳川, eds. Zhongguo shufa wenhua
daguan 中國書法文化大觀 (A grand exposition of Chinese calligraphy).
Beijing: Beijing Daxue Chubanshe, 1995.
Kao, Henry S. R., Ping Wah Lam, Nian-Feng Guo, and Daniel T. L. Shek.
“Chinese Calligraphy and Heartrate Reduction: An Exploratory Study.” In
Psychological Studies of the Chinese Language, edited by Henry S. R. Kao and
Rumjahn Hoosain, 137–149. Hong Kong: The Chinese Language Society
of Hong Kong, 1984.
Keightley, David N. “The Origin of Writing in China: Scripts and Cultural Con-
texts.” In The Origins of Writing, edited by Wayne Senner. Lincoln: Univer-
sity of Nebraska Press, 1989.
Khoo, Seow Hwa, and Nancy L. Penrose. Behind the Brushstrokes: Tales from Chi-
nese Calligraphy. Singapore: Graham Brash, 1993.
Kraus, Richard Curt. Brushes with Power: Modern Politics and the Chinese Art of Cal-
ligraphy. Berkeley: University of California Press, 1991.
Kwo, Da-wei. Chinese Brushwork: Its History, Aesthetics, and Techniques. Montclair,
NJ: Allanheld and Schram, 1981.
Lévi-Strauss, Claude. Totemism. Boston: Beacon Press, 1963.
Lip, Evelyn. Choosing Auspicious Chinese Names. Torrance, CA: Heian Interna-
tional, 1997.
Liu Zhiwei 刘志伟. Bainian hua jiagu 百年话甲骨 (One hundred years of oracle
bone inscriptions). Beijing: Haichao Chubanshe, 1999.
Louie, Emma Woo. Chinese American Names: Tradition and Transition. Jefferson,
NC: McFarland, 1998.
Nan Zhaoxu 南兆旭 and Ji Zhongming 姬仲鸣, eds. Long zhi wu—Zhongguo
re f e re n c e s
257
lidai mingren mobao dadian 龙之舞—中国历代名人墨宝大典 (Dancing of
dragons—masterpieces of Chinese calligraphy). Beijing: Hongqi Chuban-
she, 1997.
Pearson, James L. Shamanism and the Ancient Mind: A Cognitive Approach to Archae-
ology. New York: Altamira, 2002.
Sun Jiafu 孙稼阜. Caoshu shijiang 草书十讲 (Ten lectures on Cursive Script).
Shanghai: Shanghai Shuhua Chubanshe, 2004.
Tang Huisheng. “Opposition and Unity: A Study of Shamanistic Dualism in Ti-
betan and Chinese Prehistoric Art.” Rock Art Research 23.2:217–227 (2006).
Tseng, Yu-ho. A History of Chinese Calligraphy. Hong Kong: Chinese University
Press, 1993.
Watts, Alan. Tao: The Watercourse Way. New York: Pantheon Books, 1975.
Welch, Holmes. Taoism: The Parting of the Way. Boston: Beacon Press, 1965.
Xiong Bingming 熊秉明. Zhongguo shufa lilun tixi 中國書法理論體系 (Theoreti-
cal systems of Chinese calligraphy). Taipei: Xiongshi Tushu, 1999.
Zhou Jian 周健. Hanzi jiaoxue lilun yu fangfa 漢字教學理論與方法 (Theories and
practices of Chinese character teaching). Beijing: Beijing Daxue Chubanshe,
2007.
Zhu Tianshu 朱天曙. Zhuanshu shijiang 篆书十讲 (Ten lectures on the Seal
Script). Shanghai: Shanghai Shuhua Chubanshe, 2004.
259
Books in english for further study
Bai, Qianshen. Fu Shan’s World: The Transformation of Chinese Calligraphy in the Sev-
enteenth Century. Cambridge, MA: Harvard University Asia Center, 2003.
Billeter, Jean Francois. The Chinese Art of Writing. New York: Skira Rizzoli, 1990.
Chang, Ch’ung-ho, and Hans H. Frankel. Two Chinese Treatises on Calligraphy.
New Haven, CT: Yale University Press, 1995.
Chang, Joseph, and Qianshen Bai. In Pursuit of Heavenly Harmony: Paintings and
Calligraphy by Bada Shanren from the estate of Wang Fangyu and Sum Wai.
Washington, DC: Freer Gallery of Art, Smithsonian Institution, in associa-
tion with Weatherhill, Inc., 2003.
Chang, Léon Long-yien, and Peter Miller. Four Thousand Years of Chinese Calligra-
phy. Chicago: University of Chicago Press, 1990.
Farrer, Anne. The Brush Dances and the Ink Sings: Chinese Paintings and Calligraphy
from the British Museum. London: South Bank Centre, 1990.
Fazzioli, Edoardo. Chinese Calligraphy: From Pictograph to Ideogram: The History of
214 Essential Chinese/Japanese Characters. New York: Abbeville Press, 1987.
Fu, Shen. Traces of the Brush: Studies in Chinese Calligraphy. In collaboration with
Marilyn W. Fu, Mary G. Neill, and Mary Jane Clark. New Haven, CT: Yale
University Press, 1977.
Huang, Quanxin. A Self-Study Course in Seal Script. Beijing: Sinolingua, 1998.
b o o k s i n e n g l i s h f o r f u r t h e r s t u d y
260
Lai, T. C. Chinese Calligraphy: An Introduction. Seattle: University of Washington
Press, 1975.
Ledderose, Lothar. Mi Fu and the Classical Tradition of Chinese Calligraphy. Princ-
eton, NJ: Princeton University Press, 1979.
Li, Leyi. Tracing the Roots of Chinese Characters: Five Hundred Cases. Beijing: Beijing
Language and Culture University Press, 1994.
Liu, Shi-yee. Straddling East and West: Lin Yutang, a Modern Literatus: The Lin Yu-
tang Family Collection of Chinese Painting and Calligraphy. Edited by Maxwell
K. Hearn. New York: Metropolitan Museum of Art, 2007.
Murck, Alfreda, and Wen C. Fong, eds. Words and Images: Chinese Poetry, Calligra-
phy, and Painting. New York: Metropolitan Museum of Art; Princeton, NJ:
Princeton University Press, 1991.
Sturman, Peter Charles. Mi Fu: Style and the Art of Calligraphy in Northern Song
China. New Haven, CT: Yale University Press, 1997.
Sullivan, Michael. The Three Perfections: Chinese Painting, Poetry, and Calligraphy.
New York: G. Braziller, 1980.
Unger, J. Marshall. Ideogram: Chinese Characters and the Myth of Disembodied Mean-
ing. Honolulu: University of Hawai‘i Press, 2004.
Wang, Fangyu. Introduction to Chinese Cursive Script. New Haven, CT: Institute of
Far Eastern Languages, Yale University, 1958.
Wu, Jianhsin. The Way of Chinese Characters: The Origin of Four Hundred Essential
Words. Boston: Cheng and Tsui, 2007.
Yao, Min-Chih. The Influence of Chinese and Japanese Calligraphy on Mark Tobey
(1890–1976). San Francisco: Chinese Materials Center, 1983.
Yin, John Jing-hua. Fundamentals of Chinese characters. New Haven, CT: Yale Uni-
versity Press, 2006.
261
index
abdomen, 32, 70
abstract art, 192, 193
adjustment of strokes, 88, 95
alphabetic writing, 16
appreciation (of calligraphy), 180–183
balance, 91–93
binary oppositions, 176–178
borrowing, 78, 116
brain (and calligraphy), 18
breathing (when writing), 35
Bronze Script, 107
brush, 21–23, 36, 39, 195; in modern
calligraphy, 190
brush grip, 34
brush tip, 50
cai Lun, 25, 116
Cang Jie, 5, 102
center tip technique, 50–51, 53
character size, 31, 32, 144; of inscrip-
tions, 160
Chinese dating method, 123–126
Chinese lunar calendar, 161
Chinese names, 56–60
Chinese zodiac, 127, 172
civil service examinations, 10–13, 133
Clerical Script, 101, 115–122, 130
Clerical Transformation, 118, 196
composition of a piece, 155–164, 170
compound characters, 75, 86-88
concealed tip technique, 51–53, 178
Confucianism, 57, 97, 134, 175
copying, 28, 30–31; in Running and
Cursive Styles, 152
couplets, 6–7
creation of Chinese characters, 5. See also
Cang Jie
i n d e x
262
Cursive Style, 42, 102, 140, 147–152
curved lines, 65
Daoism, 175, 178, 180, 185
dating a piece, 161–162
dialectics (of calligraphy), 176–178
direction of writing. See text arrangement
dot (stroke), 42–44; in Clerical Script, 122
down-left slant (stroke), 52–54, 91; in
Clerical Script, 120
down-right slant (stroke), 54–56, 91; in
Clerical Script, 121
emperor Huizong. See Song Huizong
eye (use of), 31, 35
finger positions. See brush grip
flow of energy, 52, 70, 141, 143, 147,
149, 152, 177, 182, 184
formation of Chinese characters, 2, 17
general-to-specific pattern, 57, 82, 126,
162
generational names, 56, 57
given names, 58-60
Great Seal Script, 100–108
grid paper, 30
ground calligraphy, 15, 185, 187
hard-pen calligraphy, 147, 187
health (and calligraphy), 15, 185
hook (stroke), 62–64
horizontal line (stroke), 41, 45–46, 52,
65, 93, 94, 95; in Clerical Script,
119; in small seal, 112
Huai Su, 151
indicatives, 77
ink, 23–25, 35, 36, 149; in modern
calligraphy, 190
ink stone, 26–27, 32
ink making, 23, 26–27
inscriptions, 21, 157, 160–166
intaglio (seal), 172
lifted wrist, 33
Liu Gongquan, 31, 134–136
location (of work), 162
logographs, 74
main text (of a piece), 96–98, 157–160
meditation, 185
model characters, 3, 31, 32, 66
modern calligraphy, 187, 191
moisture, 36
multiple-component characters. See com-
pound characters
name of recipient, 163–164
number of characters in Chinese, 17, 75
number of strokes in characters, 17,
67–69
painting (Chinese), 13, 22, 24, 38, 138,
157, 190, 192
paper, 3, 25–26, 35, 116, 168; in modern
calligraphy, 190
personal names, 3. See also given names
pictographs, 73–77, 80, 196
posture, writing, 32–34
pressing and lifting, 38–40, 66
pressure (on brush), 37, 117
Qi (life force), 177
regular Script, 36, 42, 71, 85, 102, 139;
with hard pen, 188
relief (seal), 172
revealed tip technique, 51, 52, 178
rhythm, 178, 179
right-up tick (stroke), 55–56
Running Style, 42, 71, 102, 140–147
i n d e x
263
script styles, 153; for inscriptions, 160;
for learning, 2, 42
seals, 157, 164–174; seal engraving, 171–
173; seal types, 171
semantic compounds, 77
semantic element in characters. See se-
mantic-phonetic compounds
semantic-phonetic compounds, 78–80, 116
shape of characters, 108; in Clerical
Script, 118; in Regular Script,
130; in Small Seal, 110, 113
Shell-and-Bone Script, 76, 102–107, 196
side tip (technique), 50–51
signature, 56, 162
single-component characters, 75, 85
sixty-year cycle, 123–126
Slender Gold, 13, 137
Small Seal Script, 9, 69–70, 101
Song Huizong, 136–138
sound element in characters, 78–79
space management, 157, 158, 182
strokes, 17, 40–42, 65; in Small Seal,
110–112
stroke count. See number of strokes in
characters
stroke linking, 141–144, 148
stroke order, 48, 67–71, 143
surnames, 57–58
suspended wrist, 33
text arrangement, 17, 48, 108, 144, 158
thickness of stroke, 38, 65, 110, 112, 116,
117
tracing, 28, 29–30, 47; in Running and
Cursive Styles, 152
training procedure, 3, 27–32
translation (or transliteration) of Western
names, 59–60
tuft, 21, 23
turn (stroke), 61–62; in Clerical Script,
122
twelve-year cycle. See Chinese zodiac
vertical line (stroke), 41, 46–47, 52, 64–
66, 69, 91–95; in Clerical Script,
120; in Small Seal, 112
Wang Xizhi, 3, 31, 66, 131–132, 145
water calligraphy. See ground calligraphy
wave line in Clerical Script, 120
Western calligraphy, 6, 16, 17
wild cursive, 149, 150
wrist, 32–33
writing hand, 33, 66
writing space, 32
writing speed, 37
xu Shen, 75
yan Zhenqing, 31, 132–134, 188, 189
yang (seal). See relief (seal)
yin (seal). See intaglio (seal)
yin and yang, 175–181;
yong (“eternity”), 65
Zhang Xu, 149
about the author
Wendan Li is associate professor of Chinese language and linguistics in the Depart-
ment of Asian Studies at the University of North Carolina at Chapel Hill. She has
taught a course entitled Chinese Culture through Calligraphy for eight years and has
conducted workshops and presented papers at national and international conferences
on course design and teaching Chinese calligraphy to American college students. Li
is currently on the board of the American Society of Shufa Calligraphy Education,
of which she is a past president. She co-chaired the 5th International Conference on
East Asian Calligraphy Education held in Hiroshima, Japan, in 2006.
Li has also written Topic Chains in Chinese–A Discourse Analysis and Applications
in Language Teaching, has co-edited East Asian Calligraphy Education, and is published
regularly in academic journals on Chinese language teaching.
Production Notes for Li Chinese Writing and Calligraphy
Cover design by Wilson Angel
Text design and composition by Julie Matsuo-Chun with
text in Bembo and display in Univers
Printing and binding by Sheridan Books, Inc.
Printed on 60# House Opaque, 500 ppi
Suitable for college and high school students and those learning on their own,
this fully illustrated coursebook provides comprehensive instruction in the
history and practical techniques of Chinese calligraphy. No previous knowledge
of the language is required to follow the text or complete the lessons.
The work covers three major areas:1) descriptions of Chinese characters and
their components, including stroke types, layout patterns, and indications of
sound and meaning; 2) basic brush techniques; and 3) the social, cultural,
historical, and philosophical underpinnings of Chinese calligraphy—all of which
are crucial to understanding and appreciating this art form.
Students practice brush writing as they progress from tracing to copying to
free-hand writing. Model characters are marked to indicate meaning and stroke
order, and well-known model phrases are shown in various script types, allowing
students to practice different calligraphic styles. Beginners will fi nd the author’s
advice on how to avoid common pitfalls in writing brush strokes invaluable.
CHINESE WRITING AND CALLIGRAPHY will be welcomed by both students
and instructors in need of an accessible text on learning the fundamentals of the
art of writing Chinese characters.
WENDAN LI is associate professor of Chinese language and linguistics at the
University of North Carolina at Chapel Hill.
C H I N E S E L A N G U A G E
Cover illustration: Small Seal Script by Wu Rangzhi, Qing dynasty, and
author’s Chinese writing brushes and brush stand.
Cover design: Wilson Angel
UNIVERSITY of HAWAI‘I PRESS
Honolulu, Hawai‘i 96822-1888
LI
LI-ChnsWriting_cvrMech.indd 1 4/19/10 4:11:27 PM
Preface
Chapter One: Introduction
This Book
The Chapters
Writing and Calligraphy in Chinese Society
The Artistic Qualities of Chinese Writing
To Learners with No Back ground in the Chinese Language
Discussion Questions
Chapter Two: Writing Instruments and Training Procedures
The Four Treasures in a Chinese Study
The Training Process
Getting Ready to Write
Moisture, Pressure, and Speed
Discussion Questions and Writing Practice
Chapter Three: Brush Techniques and Basic Strokes I
Brush Techniques (1): Pressing Down the Brush and Bringing It Up
An Overview of the Major Stroke Types
Stroke Type 1: The Dot
Stroke Type 2: The Horizontal Line
Stroke Type 3: The Vertical Line
Tracing
Discussion Questions and Writing Practice
Chapter Four: Brush Techniques and Basic Strokes II
Brush Techniques (2): Center Tip versus Side Tip
Brush Techniques (3): Revealed Tip versus Concealed Tip
Stroke Type 4: The Down-Left Slant
Stroke Type 5: The Down-Right Slant
Stroke Type 6: The Right-Up Tick
Chinese Culture (1): Chinese Names
Discussion Questions and Writing Practice
Chapter Five: Basic Strokes III and Stroke Order
Stroke Type 7: The Turn
Stroke Type 8: The Hook
Summary of Major Stroke Types
Suggestions for Beginners to Avoid Common Pitfalls
Stroke Order
Discussion Questions and Writing Practice
Chapter Six: The Formation of Chinese Characters
The Nature of Chinese Written Signs
Categories of Characters
The Complexity and Developmental Sequence of the Categories
Chinese Culture (2):Dates in Chinese According to the Western Calendar
Discussion Questions and Writing Practice
Chapter Seven: The Internal Structure of Characters and the Aesthetics of Writing
The Structure of Characters
Aesthetic Principles
Chinese Culture (3): What Is Written in Chinese Calligraphy?
Discussion Questions and Writing Practice
Chapter Eight: The Development of Chinese Calligraphy I: The Seal Scripts
An Overview of Scripts and Styles
The Great Seal Scripts
The Small Seal Script
Discussion Questions and Writing Practice
Chapter Nine: The Development of Chinese Calligraphy II: The Clerical Script
The Clerical Script
Writing the Clerical Script
Chinese Culture (4): The Traditional Chinese Dating Method
Discussion Questions and Writing Practice
Chapter Ten: The Development of Chinese Calligraphy III: The Regular Script
The Regular Script
The Regular and Clerical Scripts Compared
Masters of the Regular Script
Discu ssion Questions and Writing Practice
Chapter Eleven: The Development of Chinese Calligraphy IV: The Running and Cursive Styles
The Running Style
The Cursive Style
Writing the Running and Cursive Styles
Concluding Remarks on the Development of Chinese Calligraphy
Discussion Questions and Writing Practice
Chapter Twelve: The Art of Composition
Components of a Calligraphy Piece
Chinese Culture (5): Chinese Seals
Discussion Questions and Writing Practice
Chapter Thirteen: The Yin and Yang of Chinese Calligraphy
Diversity in Harmony
Dialectics in the Art of Calligraphy
Appreciation of Calligraphy
Chinese Calligraphy and Health
Discussion Questions and Writing Practice
Chapter Fourteen: By Way of Conclusion Chinese Calligraphy in the Modern Era
Modern Developments in Chinese Calligraphy
Chinese Calligraphy in the West
What Is Chinese Calligraphy?
Discussion Questions and Writing Practice
Appendix One: Brush Writing Exercises
Appendix Two: Pinyin Pronunciation Guide
Notes
Glossary
References
Books in English for Further Study
Index
About the Author